Mystery of The Ages (1985 Search Able v1)
Mystery of The Ages (1985 Search Able v1)
Mystery of The Ages (1985 Search Able v1)
HERBERT N ARMSTRONG
MYSTERY
OF THE AGES
Time may prove Mystery o the Ages f to be the most significant book written in almost 1,900 years. This latest volume by Herbert W. Armstrong clarifies the most important knowledge ever revealed from the supreme source of understandingknowledge that has mystified all humans since mankind first appeared on earth. Today, man is mystified by his inability to solve his problems, or find answers to the perplexing questions about himself and the world he inhabits. The world about us is a mystery. We ourselves are a mystery. Who and what is man? What is the purpose of human life? O r is there a purpose? Almost sixty years ago Herbert W. Armstrong was forced into an in-depth research into the Bible and the origin of man. H e was determined to find absolute proof of the existence of God and the authority of the Bible or to reject both.
(continued on back pap)
After many months of virtually nightand-day study, the answers were revealed to him, with proof that was positive and absolute. He found that the mysteries that have perplexed humans were long ago revealed by the one supreme authority of all knowledge, but in a coded message not allowed to be decoded and revealed for the world to hear-until now! These basic revealed truths have been kept a mystery in the book that is at once the worlds number one best-seller, and yet the least understood of books. Herbert W. Armstrong discovered the Bible to be a coded book, with answers to the paramount mysteries confronting all humanity. He found this code was not intended to be clearly understood until our day in this crisis period in this latter half of the twentieth century. He learned that the Bible is like a jigsaw puzzlethousands of pieces that need putting together-and the pieces will fit together in only one way. This present book puts the many pieces of the great puzzle together so they can be clearly understood. Your own Bible will henceforth no longer be a mystery to you, once you have read this book.
Copyright 0 1985 by Worldwide Church of God, Pasadena, CA 91123 U.S.A. All rights reserved No part of this book may be reproduced in any form without permission in writing from the Worldwide Church of God. Published by Dodd, Mead & Company, Inc. 79 Madison Avenue, New York, N.Y. 10016 Distributed in Canada by McClelland and Stewart Limited, Toronto Manufactured in the United States of America First Edition Library of Congress Cataloging in Publication Data Armstrong, Herbert W. Mvsterv of the ages. 1. Bible-Criticicm, interpretation, etc. 2. Life. I. title. BS511.2.A63 1985 23V.99 85-12953 ISBN 0-396-08773-6
I would like to dedicate this book to the memory of m y wife of 50 happy years, Loma Armstrong.
Authors Statement
I WRITE THIS BOOK? I have lived a long, active, interestpacked life covering the last eight and a half years of the 19th century and all of the twentieth t o the present. I have lived through the horse and buggy age, the automobile and industrial age, the air age, the nuclear age and now into the space age. I have seen America live through the agrarian age when farmers walked behind their horse-drawn ploughs singing happily, and into the urban age when Midwest American farmers are groaning and fighting for more government subsidies to prevent the extinction of farm life. I have seen this twentieth century develop into a state of awesome advancement a n d achievement industrially and technologically. Paradoxically, I have seen alarming escalation of appalling evils, crime and violence and the crucible of nuclear war develop to
HY DID
vii
threaten the very extinction of the human race within the present living generation. These conditions and facts are indeed mysteries that have remained unsolved and now need to be explained. I have traveled over the four quarters of this globe we call earth. I have rubbed shoulders with the rich and the very poor and those in between. I have visited with captains of industry, emperors, kings, presidents and prime ministers. I have rubbed shoulders with and come to know the totally illiterate and poverty-stricken poor. I have seen this world firsthand a t close range as have only the very few. And through this long and pulsating eventful life I have asked myself many questions that were deep mysteries to me, and remain unanswered and unexplained mysteries to the world as a whole. When I was five, my father said I was going to be a Philadelphia lawyer when I grew up, because I was always asking so many questions about so many things. I wanted to UNDERSTAND. I craved UNDERSTANDING. King Solomon, the wisest man who ever lived, desired wisdom, and God gave him wisdom above all others. After so many years I realize now that the same God has given me the UNDERSTANDING of lifes deepest mysteries that remain an enigma in most minds. How did all this happen? I was reared in a Protestant church until the age of 18, but I never heard these plaguing questions explained in church. If the Bible reveals the answers, why so many denominations of Christianity and so much disagreement as to what the Bible says? But who can understand the Bible? I certainly never had understood it. And even if one does, can one believe the Bible? Does it speak with any authority? That question puzzled me and is the mystery to be cleared up in this
Vlll
...
Authors Statement
volume. How I came to understand began a t age 34, in the year of 1926. But it only began there. The final crystal-clear reason that impelled me to write this book did not fully reveal itself to my mind until December of 1984. It was a mind-boggling realization-a pivotal truth-that will be made clear in this book. The beginning of opening my mind to the truth covered in this book began in the summer of 1926. I asked myself: Who am I? WHAT I? WHYam am I? I tried to reason out the answer, but I couldnt. It was a mystery. Then, that very autumn I was confronted with a mind-disturbing challenge on a biblical question and the theory of evolution. This resulted in opening my mind to amazing vistas and depths of knowledge and understanding. It all started with the question of the theory of evolution and t h e religious question of Sunday observance. I knew that the Bible was the worlds number one selling book. Yet to me it had been an enigma. I could never understand it. I said, The Bible says, Thou shalt observe Sunday. I was asked how did I know? Had I read that in the Bible? I answered that I knew because all the churches observe Sunday and I supposed the source of their teaching was the Bible. But my marriage was at stake on the question. I was forced into an in-depth study and research into the Bible and also into the theory of evolution, which was at that time rapidly gaining acceptance in the field of higher education. My in-depth study into the works of Darwin, Huxley, Haeckel, et a1 led me to question the authority of the Bible and even the existence of God.
ix
These intellectual thinkers had become aware of the increasing knowledge about the universe. They could not square this expanding knowledge with the religious teaching of their time. My researches into the thinking of the founders of the evolutionary theory recalled to mind what I then read in the eighth chapter of the Psalms-how King David, a monarch of an ancient nation, looked at the stars in the sky, noted the expansion of the vast universe and began to think. He wondered in his mind, what was he? What was man-in the vast expansion of the endless universe? I found that this ancient king had never received the full answer to the questions that plagued his mind. But I was later to discover, in my same research, how the final answer was revealed to the apostle Paul and explained in the second chapter of the book of Hebrews. I was determined to find absolute proof of the existence of God and of the authority of the Bible, or to reject both. Most people, I realized, accept or reject a belief on careless assumption due t o whatever they have heard, been taught, or assumed without proof. I wanted to understand. And I wanted to be sure on positive proof, not on careless assumption or wishful thinking. After many months of virtually night-and-day intensive study, the answers were revealed t o me with proof that was positive and absolute. No longer was the existence of God taken carelessly for granted because I had always heard it or been taught it. I found absolute and positive proof of the existence of the Supreme Creator God and also of the absolute authority of the Holy Bible as the Word of God-the revealed message and knowledge of God for mankind. I found the Bible to be a coded book, with answers to the paramount mysteries confronting all humanity. The revelation of these mysteries was lost, even to
X
Authors Statement
the Church of God, although the revelation of them has been preserved in the writings of the Bible. Why, then, has the world not clearly understood? Because the Bible was a coded book, not intended to be understood u&lour day- in this 1atterTaIGf the twentieth century. I learned, in this night-and-day study, why it i s t s e most misunderstood book, even though it is the worlds best-seller. The full explanation or truth of any one subject is seldom made complete and clear in any one passage. Other portions, factors, or phases of the subject are usually contained in one or several other passages in other parts of the Bible either in the Old or New Testament. A true and full understanding of this subject is profitable only when these perhaps several other passages, scattered throughout the Bible, are put together. Vistas of knowledge and understanding that have remained the chief mysteries of life to most people were opened to my astonished eyes and mind. But it is recorded in that book that in these very days in which our generation lives, the great mystery would be cleared. And indeed it was to my astonished mind. I learned that the Bible is like a jigsaw puzzle -thousands of pieces that need putting together-and the pieces will fit together in only one way. Then the picture becomes crystal clear to the one willing to believe what God our Creator says. This present book merely puts the many pieces of the great puzzle together so they can be clearly understood. As you read and reread this book, compare constantly with your own Bible. See these truths with your own eyes in your own Bible. And open your mind to Gods leading you into his TRUTH as you do. It will make a lot of sense as nothing ever did before.
xi
Time may prove this to be the most important book written in almost 1,900 years. Not-because of .literary excellence or flowery language of scholarship that it has purposely avoided, but because. of its plainness OF speech in clarifying the most important knowledge ever revealed from the supreme source of-understanding of that which has mystified gx humans since man first -_ appeared on earth, This worlds humanity has been blinded t o who, what and why man is-how man appeared on earth. Man has been mystified by his inability to solve his problems, or find answers to the perplexing questions of mankind and the world he inhabits. All these mysteries were long ago revealed by the one supreme authority of all knowledge, but in a coded message not allowed to be revealed and decoded until our time. The Church was infiltrated during the first century with another gospel. Many false teachings and false churches under the name of traditional Christianity arose. As God reveals in Revelation 12:9, the whole world has been deceived. These basic truths have been kept a mystery. Even sincere and well-meaning men among the clergy have received their teaching from other men as handed down traditionally in these churches. They have assumed these false teachings to be the true teachings of the Bible. Instead of putting the various pieces of the jigsaw puzzle properly and sensibly together, it has become the practice and custom to read an already-believed false teaching into each particular scripture, taken out of its context. In other words to interpret the scriptures to say what they have already been taught and come to believe. The Bible needs no interpretation because it interprets itself. This becomes clear when one sees the various scriptures of each
xii
Authors Statement
subject properly put together, as the Bible itself says, here a little, and there a little (Isa. 2810). Even the world of a professed traditional Christianity has been deceived. I have often said it is much more difficult to unlearn an erroneous supposed truth than it is to learn a new truth. Even in these past 58 years I had not fully and clearly realized the significance of the fact revealed in Genesis 3:22-24-that, in fact, God had closed the Holy Spirit and eternal life to mankind in general until the removal of Satan at the Second Coming of Jesus Christ. Traditional Christian teaching had always assumed there is a contest between God and Satan -that God has been trying desperately to get the world saved, but in this great controversy Satan has been winning. In other words, God had sent Jesus Christ at his First Coming to try to win this ongoing war against Satan. Traditional Christianity has taught that whosoever will may come and be saved through Jesus. For some years I had come to partially realize the error of this assumption, but the full truth on this point had not come crystal clear to me until very recently. This truth is indeed mind-boggling. It clears what had been clouded in mystery. It is hoped that this book, written since Gods time for it has come, will open many eyes to the truth of these long-hidden mysteries. And now, in my 93rd year, I have been led to write this book before this event-packed life ends, to share with as many as care to know, the answers that the great supreme mind of God reveals in his Word-if one is only willing to understand that Word.
xiii
Table of Contents
AUTHORS STATEMENT PREFACE
......................................
vii
1
..................................................................
INTRODUCTION How the Seven Mysteries Were Revealed CHAPTER I Who and What Is God?
.................
7
31
.............................................
CHAPTER 2 Mystery of Angels and Evil Spirits CHAPTER 3 The Mystery of Man
............................
58
96 136 159
..................................................
...............................................
.........................................................
...............................................
198
................................
................................................
..................................................... .........................................
SUGGESTED READING
Preface
T h e world a b o u t you is a mystery. You yourself are a mystery. You have never seen your brain, the seat of your intellect and all that you are. Your life is engulfed in mysteries. On reflection, your very existence is a mystery. Did you simply happen by unintelligent resident earthly forces without meaning or purpose, or were you intelligently designed and created by an all-powerful God of supreme mind for a purpose that also has been hidden in mystery? In fact, the persistent tradition throughout human history about the Creator God has been such a mystery that higher education in the Western world has sought t o erase the mystery by giving its virtually unanimous acceptance to the theory of evolution. Diffusion of education did not begin among the
1
I D you
I? What am I? Why am I?
human race until after the invention of printing in the 15th century. As education became more widespread-as intellectualism developed-as knowledge of astronomy expanded knowledge of the universe about us-thinking minds began to ask questions. What of the whole vast universe? How did it all originate? Rational, scientifically oriented minds found themselves unable to explain the developing knowledge of an expanded universe with the teaching of religion as they knew it through the Roman Catholic Church and Protestantism, which had dominated the thinking of the Western world. The teaching of a long-haired, semi-effeminate picture of Jesus and the concept of a God composed of invisible spirit was not intellectually satisfying to them. It was all a colossal mystery. In the vanity of their self-professed scholarly minds they tried to evade the mystery entirely on the basis of materialism. They appeased their curiosity by attempting to work out a solution to the mystery of origins, existence, and life by reasoning out a self-satisfying, materialistic explanation. Gradually the theory of evolution evolved in thinking, yet ignorant, minds filled with intellectual vanity. This thinking evolved into the theory of use and disuse by de Lamarck. On t h e heels of de Lamarcks theory came Charles Darwin with his theory of the survival of the fittest. Actually Darwin died unsure of his own theory. However, two colleagues, Haeckel and Huxley, fought vigorously t o promote the Darwinian theory into public acceptance. But were created human minds of intellectual vanity, who created a theory, more all-knowing than the supreme mind that created them? The levolutionary f theoryehas been-inventedpy human minds-in-an efforf to explain-the presence of a creation- without the preexistence of a divine Geator. --.-.-.
2
Preface
And if the all-powerful God was your Maker, and exists as the divine Creator of all that is, then the mystery about God emerges, in order of time sequence, as the first and paramount mystery of all. Who- and what is-Gsd? That is a mystery not r understood by any religion, not explained by science, untaught by higher education. The intellectually vain originators of t h e evolutionary theory found t h e existence of God, as presented by religion, a mystery they could neither understand nor accept. But the religionists whom they rejected did not themselves understand the mystery of God. Yet God does reveal himself through his Word the Holy Bible, if these religionists would only believe Gods own revelation. God reveals himself in his Word the Holy Bible, yet almost none has understood it. The Bible, as author Bruce Barton said, is the book that nobody knows. The Bible itself is the basic mystery that reveals all L o t h e r mysteries. If the truth about God is mystery number one revealed in the Bible, assuredly the truth about angels and evil spirits is second in order. Is the existence of spirit beings fact or a myth? Is there, after all, a devil? Did God create a devil? If there are holy angels, what is their purpose and function? The Bible clearly-states that this-world is actually ruled by unseen principalities - . __ of evil spirits: Do evil spTrits affect and influence -__ humans and even governments today? Do evil spirits affect even your own life? T h i s question seems enveloped in total mystery. Certainly third in order is the mystery of your own life-of humanity as a whole. W h a t a n d why is humanity? Is man an immortal soul? Do the dead know what the living are doing? Is man a flesh and blood being with an immortal soul within? Is there meaning
3
MYSTERYOFTHEAGES
and purpose to human life? Did we evolve through unintelligent material forces without meaning or purpose? Why are humans beset with seemingly unsolvable problems? Fourth in line of the not-understood mysteries is the civilization that has developed in mans world. How did it develop? Why do we find a world of awesome advancement and progress, yet paradoxically with appalling and mounting evils? Why cannot the minds that develop spacecraft, computers and marvels of science, technology and industry solve the problems that demonstrate human helplessness? Next, in the development of human society on earth, is the mystery of the Jew and the ancient nation of Israel. Are the Jews the ancient nation of Israel? Why did God raise up one special nation? Why are they Gods chosen people? Are they Gods favorites? Does God discriminate against other nations? Is God a respecter of persons? What is Israels purpose in the divine order of things? Come now to the mystery of the Church. Why should there be the institution of the Church in the world? Is there some purpose for it, not understood even by the religion of traditional Christianity? Is the Church one Christ-originated Church or does it consist of many differing sects and denominations? Is the Church well organized on a definite pattern originated by Christ? Is there government and authority in the Church? Is it a large universal Church of many millions of members or a small and persecuted Church? How could one recognize the true Church today? Finally, why the mystery of the kingdom of God? Jesus gospel message was the kingdom of God. Is the kingdom of God something within each person? Is it something that may be set up in mens hearts? Is it the
4
Preface
institution of the church? Or is it something else altogether? Why this mystery of the very gospel of Jesus Christ? These are the SEVEN GREAT MYSTERIES that concern the very lives of every human being on earth. The PLAIN TRUTH of all these mysteries is revealed in the Bible, but none of the churches or theologians seem to have comprehended them. WHY? The Bible is the basic mystery of all. If one begins reading the Bible continuously from beginning to end, one becomes bewildered. The Bible simply cannot be read like any other book. It is a mystery because it is a coded book. It is like a jigsaw puzzle, with perhaps thousands of various pieces of different forms and shapes that can be fitted together in only one precise pattern. The truths of the Bible are revealed here a little, there a little, scattered from beginning to end, and revealed only through the Holy Spirit within those surrendered and yielded t o God, willing t o have confessed error and wrongdoing, and yielding t o BELIEVE Christ the Word of God. Jesus was the Word in Person. The Bible is the same Word in print. No one can have the Holy Spirit, which alone can open the human mind to understanding of this Word of God, without a complete repentance and an implicit belief in Christ as well as believing what he says. Repentance can only follow admission of being wrong -of wrongdoing a n d wrong believing. T h e most difficult thing for any human seems t o be to admit being wrong-to confess error of belief and conviction-to unlearn false knowledge as well as t o learn true knowledge. Is it any wonder, then, that the Bible is the book t h a t nobody knows or understands?-or certainly almost nobody.
5
God deliberately coded his book so that it would not be understood until our modern time. Why was this purposely done? Even that is a mystery. The pages that follow will explain. In the 12th chapter of Daniel we read even that devout man of God could not understand that which was given to him to write as part of the Bible. He said he heard, but understood not. The revealing angel said, GO thy way, Daniel: for the words are closed up and sealed till the time of the end (Authorized Version). Today we have reached that time. God has opened to understanding his Word to those he has chosen, who have yielded and surrendered to him and to his blessed sacred Word. In the 12th chapter of Daniel, it says a t this time of the end the wise would understand, but none of the wicked shall understand.,Who, then, are the wise-y&+QW-understand the Bible? The_fear_of-the-Lord is thebeginning-of wisdom (Ps. lll:lO)imd.2agood understandinahave all they that do his commandmgnts; (same verse). Xet tra4itional Chr&tia_nitglh-asgenerally denied Gods sommandments,says_they_are-done away,nailed to the- cross. T h e clergy a n d theologians of organized ____ ChristianityllLthe~fore, cannot a n d d o n o t understand ~e-Hoky-Bible How, then, can we, in this book, understand and reveal to the reader these boggling mysteries? That question will be answered in the Introduction t o follow.
-
Introduction
How the Seven Mysteries Were Revealed
H E WORLDSU M B E R O N E concern N today is the question of human survival! Science and technology have produced the weapons of mass destruction that could blast all human life off this earth! So many nations now possess nuclear weapons that one madman could ignite the .nuclear World War I11 that could erase all human life from this planet. Yet the truth of God, if known and acted on, could have saved humanity from this threat and all its evils! Stop a moment. THINK this. on You live in a world seemingly far advanced in science, technology, higher education and diffusion of knowledge. People think its a world of GREAT PROGRESS. We send men t o cavort about on the moon and return them safely back t o earth. Unmanned spacecraft land on Mars and send back to earth close-up photographs of
MYSTERY
OF THE AGES
the Martian surface. Other unmanned spacecraft fly close to Jupiter and send back astonishing pictures of Jupiter and the rings of Saturn. Surgeons transplant human hearts and other organs. Its a magic, entrancing push-button world where work is done largely by machines. Its the glamour dreamworld of the three Ls-leisure, luxury and license. But paradoxically, its also a world of IGNORANCE! Even the educated know not how to solve their problems and the worlds evils. They know not the way of PEACE or the TRUE VALUES of life! About one half of the worlds population is still illiterate, in the grip of abject poverty, living in filth and squalor. The grim reapers of starvation and disease take human lives by the millions. Its an unhappy, restless world in frustration, staring a hopeless future in the face. Its a world ridden with escalating crime and violence, immorality, injustice (even in its courts of law), dishonesty, corruption in government and business, and continual wars, pointing now to the final nuclear World War 1 1 1. WHYthis paradox of PROGRESS amid DEGENERATION?
Gods Truth Would Have Solved!
True religion-Gods truth empowered with the love of God imparted by the Holy Spirit-would have pointed the way, and led to happiness, abundance and eternal salvation. When you see whats wrong with the worlds religions, youll have pinpointed the cause of all world evils! What is religion? It is defined as the worship of, and service to, God or the supernatural. It is mans relation to his Creator. Some religions have perverted
8
that definition. They worship not the God who created them, but gods which t h e y have created. Religion involves ones conduct, onesjrincipLeS, oncs-way of life and ones concept of the hereafter. ---- The real CAUSES of all this worlds religious confusion-and all its evils-are revealed in SEVEN BASIC MYSTERIES that decry this babylon of religious confusion and the resulting world chaos! But now Gods time has come! He now sends a voice to cry out with amplified world-covering power to reveal the way out of this senseless madness, into the world of PEACE and righteousness that soon shall grip the earth! In the book of Isaiah is a NOW prophecy: The voice of him that crieth in the wilderness, Prepare ye the way of the Lord. . . .lift up thy voice with strength; lift it up, be not afraid; s a y . . . Behold, the Lord God will come with strong hand, and his arm shall rule for him: behold, his reward is with him, and his work before him (Isa. 403,9-10). That voice now cries out! The prophet Malachi confirmed this: Behold, I will send my messenger, and he shall prepare the way before me: and the Lord, whom ye seek, shall suddenly come to his temple, even the messenger of the covenant, whom ye delight in: behold, he shall come, saith the Lord of hosts (Mal. 3:l).
-x
1 -
Malachis prophecy, like Isaiahs, if you will read on past the first verse, refers t o a human messenger preparing the way before Christs now imminent Second Coming, this time in supreme POWER AND GLORY as Ruler over all nations! Understand the duality principle here. These prophecies refer to a type and its fulfillment. John the Baptist was a voice crying out in the physical wilderness of the Jordan River area, preparing for the human physical Jesus First Coming t o a material temple at Jerusalem, t o a physical Judah. But that was a prototype, or forerunner of a voice lifted up (greatly amplified by modern printing, radio and TV), crying out in the midst of todays spiritual wilderness of religious confusion, announcing the imminency of Christs Second Coming as the spiritually GLORIFIED Christ, to his spiritual temple (the Church resurrected t o spirit immortality) (Eph. 2:21-22). Jesus came, over 1,900 years ago, to announce the FUTURE kingdom of God. Hes coming this time t o ESTABLISH that kingdom. That end-time last warning message is now going out worldwide in amplified power. Its going before kings, emperors, presidents, prime ministers of nations-and t o their peoples, on all continents and all nations of the earth! How in this age of religious confusion could one come to know these seven basic mysteries of the ages t h a t decry this world-gripping conglomeration of beliefs? Why, in general, are people in Thailand Buddhist; those in Italy, France and Spain Catholic; those in the Arab world Islamic? Primarily, of course, because they and those around them grew up being taught, and automatically accepting, those faiths. To expect one of
10
them to discover the TRUTH (hidden from them and also contrary to the teachings of childhood and adulthood that engulfed them) would seem to be expecting the impossible. Why do most people believe the things they believe? Few, indeed, ever stop to ask themselves in retrospect how they came to accept the beliefs that have found lodgment in their minds.
Further, most people stubbornly refuse t o believe what they are unwilling to believe. Theres an old saying, He who is convinced against his will is of the same opinion still. I was no different. Of myself, and of my own volition, I would never have discovered these GREAT
TRUTHS.
But then, the prophet Moses never would have discovered the truths he wrote-the first five books of the Bible. It required a miraculous act of GOD,in the incident of the burning bush, to open his mind and to reveal to him the things of GOD.Moses did not seek God. God called and drafted Moses. Even on being confronted by the very voice of God, Moses protested. He stuttered! He felt he could not qualify for the task. God said he would have Moses brother Aaron be his spokesman and brought Moses to acquiescence. Gods command was irresistible. Moses yielded. The apostle Paul, centuries later, never would have come to know or reveal for us Gods TRUTHS of his own will. He was breathing out threatenings and slaughter against the disciples of the Lord (Acts 9:l). But the living Jesus struck him down blind, brought him to his senses and instructed him both in knowledge and in what Christ determined he should do. Christ in Person revealed to him many of the TRUTHS you will read here. How, then, did I come to understand the precious knowledge of the TRUTH? Certainly not on my own, or because I sought it or because of any virtues of my own. But Jesus Christ struck me down in a manner quite different from the apostle Pauls experience, yet nonetheless painfully and effectively. Such basic TRUTHS are revealed, not thought out in any human mind. They come from God, not man! And in all biblically recorded cases the initiative was Gods!
12
Jeremiah protested that he was too young. But God said: DOnot say, I am only a youth; for to all to whom I send you you shall go, and whatever I command you you shall speak (Jer. 1:7, Revised Standard Version). Isaiah protested that he was a man of unclean lips, but God caused him to accept the appointed mission. Jonah tried to run away on a ship but God compelled him to deliver his commanded message. Peter and Andrew wanted to be fishermen but Jesus called on them to forsake all and to follow him. Similarly, I wanted to be an advertising man, but God brought me by circumstances not to my choosing to the mission he had in store for me. I repeat, at this point, this is the crux of the whole matter: the initiative is Gods. His purpose shall stand. The world is full of religions that originated in the imagination, reasoning and speculating of certain humans. But they had no true basis to reason from. The TRUTH is REVEALED from GOD! But, does not everybody have access to biblical truth? Yes, people suppose the churches teach what is revealed in the Bible. So I give you, now, a brief synopsis of the experience by which Jesus Christ struck me down, so to speak, and revealed ASTOUNDING TRUTHS! Biblical truths not believed or taught by the churches.
of
Ambition Ignited
I was born of ordinary but stable and upright parents, with an ancestry in the Quaker faith. I have my genealogy all the way back to Edward the First of England and a line extending back to King David of ancient Israel. I have been astonished to discover this genealogy and the fact that I am, on one side of my family, actually of the house of David. My forebears emigrated from England to
13
Pennsylvania with William Penn, a hundred years before the United States became a nation. I had been reared from earliest childhood in the Quaker faith, but religious interest in those formative years was passive. At age 18 I virtually dropped all interest in religion, and ceased attending church. I had, at 18, put myself through an intensive self-analysis, coupled with a survey of the occupations and professions to determine where I belonged-to avoid being the proverbial square peg in the round hole. Even at that age I had observed that most people were simply victims of circumstance. Few had ever planned intelligently their future lives. Many or most had stumbled into whatever job they found open. They did not choose where, in what part of the country or the world, they should live. They had been buffeted about by circumstance. Those who went to college chose whatever course or profession that appealed to them a t the time. But when I was yet only 16, a summer-vacation employer had, by praise for work well done and general encouragement, aroused the burning fire of ambition within me. Ambition is not only the desire for accomplishment, it includes the will and the drive to p a y the price! This self-analysis a t age 18 led me into t h e advertising profession and a business life. I studied diligently, burning the midnight oil, instead of seeking youthful pleasures. I became unusually successful. I worked hard, had a reputation as a hustler. I studied diligently, worked toward self-improvement. All this, of course, developed great self-confidence, which was later to be replaced by a different kind of confidence-FAITH in Christ.
14
I selected the jobs where I would learn, and sold myself to my employers, choosing fields that threw me into contact with successful men. In 1915 I established my own business as a publishers representative in Chicago, Illinois. I managed to represent the nine leading bank journals of the United States-journals read by chief officers of banks. I did business with the presidents of many of the nations largest industrial corporations in the Middle West. I attended state and national bankers conventions, got to know many of the leading bankers of South LaSalle Street, Chicago, and Wall Street, New York. I was making an income, by age 28, equivalent to approximately $375,000 per year measured by todays dollar value. It was at this height of my early business success that God began dealing with me. I had been recently married.
The Unrecognized Call In a matter of days after our marriage, while living in Chicago, my wife had a dream so vivid and impressive it overwhelmed and shook her tremendously. It was so realistic it seemed more like a vision. For two or three days afterward everything else seemed unreal-as if in a daze-and only this extraordinary dream seemed real. In her dream she and I were crossing the wide intersection, only a block or two from our apartment, where Broadway diagonally crosses Sheridan Road. Suddenly there appeared an awesome sight in the sky above. It was a dazzling spectacle-the sky filled with a gigantic solid mass of brilliant stars, shaped like a huge banner. The stars began to quiver and separate, finally vanishing. In her dream, she called my attention to the vanishing stars, when another huge grouping of flashing
15
stars appeared, then quivering, separating and vanishing like the first. As she and I, in her dream, looked upward at the vanishing stars, three large white birds suddenly appeared in the sky between us and the vanishing stars. These great white birds flew directly toward us. As they descended nearer, she perceived that they were angels. Then, my wife wrote a day or two after the dream, in a letter to my mother that I have just run across among old family pictures, it dawned on me that Christ was coming, and I was so happy I was just crying for joy. Then suddenly I thought of Herbert and was rather worried. She knew I had evidenced very little religious interest, although we had attended a corner church two or three times. Then it seemed in her dream that Christ descended from among them and stood directly in front of us. At first I was a little doubtful and afraid of how he would receive us, because I remembered we had neglected our Bible study and had our minds too much on things apart from his interests. But as we went up to him, he put his arms around both of us, and we were so happy! I thought people all over the world had seen him come. As far as we could see, people were just swarming into the streets a t this broad intersection. Some were glad and some were afraid. Then it seemed he had changed into an angel. I was terribly disappointed a t first, until he told me Christ was really coming in a very short time. At that time, we had been going quite regularly to motion picture theaters. She asked the angel if this were wrong. He replied Christ had important work for us to do, preparing for his coming-there would be no time for movies. (Those were the days of the silent
16
pictures.) Then the angel and the whole spectacle seemed to vanish, and she awakened, shaken and wondering! In the morning, she told me of her dream. I was embarrassed. I didnt want t o think about it, yet I was afraid t o totally dismiss it. I thought of a logical way to evade i t myself, and still solve it. Why dont you tell it t o the minister of the church up on the corner, I suggested, and ask him whether it means anything. With that, I managed to put it out of my mind. Let me say here that in about 99,999 times out of 100,000, when people think GOD speaking to them in a is dream or vision in this day and age, it is pure imagination, or some form of self-hypnotism or selfdeception. But if this was a vision from God, like Jonah, I tried t o run away. But subsequent to this, in Gods due time, God dealt with me in no uncertain terms, even as he had dealt with Moses, Isaiah, Jeremiah, Jonah, Andrew, Peter and the apostle Paul.
Business Disintegrates
Then came the devastating flash depression of 1920. It was not long-lived, but disastrous for the year. My big advertising accounts were in the farm tractor and implement and other manufacturing fields, rather than the metropolitan banks. All my big-commission clients, including such corporations as Goodyear Tire & Rubber, J.I. Case, Moline Plow, John Deere and Company, Emmerson-Brantingham and Dalton Adding Machine, went into receivers hands. One nationally known corporation president of my acquaintance committed suicide. Through no fault of my own, my business was swept out from under my feet by forces beyond my control. Out of Portland, Oregon, where I had moved with
17
my family, I established an advertising service for laundry owners. The laundry industry was 11th in the country in dollar volume of business, yet the most backward. I teamed with an efficiency expert, in my judgment top in the nation in his field. I took on only clients who allowed us to put their businesses on a new efficiency basis-both in the quality of laundering service and in business methods, which I supervised. I had to be able to make promises in the advertising that my clients would fulfill. But in 1926 a national advertising agency based in the East sold the Laundry Owners National Association a bill of goods-to put big-space advertising in the national womens magazines. The association had power to obligate every member to a commitment for this magazine advertising equal to approximately 85 percent of the justifiable advertising expenditure each local laundry could make. I knew nothing of this until it was a closed deal. I had been doubling and trebling the business volume of each of my clients. My business was growing. Again a highly successful business was swept out from under my feet through causes over which I had no control. But there was a reason-God was taking away my advertising business.
Disturbing Dual Challenges Then, in the fall of L!z,& age 34, it seemed that the at roof had caved in and I was crushed! I was assailed by very disturbing dual challenges. My wife, after nine years of happy marriage, began keeping the seventh,day_Sabbath instead of Sunday! I was aghast! I was angry. To me that was religious fanaticism! What would business contacts think? But she claimed to have found this teaching in the Bible.
18
All the arguments came instantly to mind. They were of no avail. But the Bible says, I protested, Thou shalt observe SUNDAY! Can you show that to me in the Bible? she asked. Well, no, I replied. I dont know much about the Bible. My interests and studies have been in the area of business. But all these churches cant be wrong-they take their beliefs from the Bible, and they all observe Sunday. If, she smiled sincerely-but to me exasperatingly-you can show me where the Bible commands Sunday observance, Ill go back to it. There was no dodging the challenge. My marriage depended on it! Coincidentally, a sister-in-law, newly married and fresh out of college, hurled at me a second humiliating challenge. Herbert Armstrong, she accused contemptuously, you are just plain ignorant! Everybody who has any education k n o w s human life h a s come by evolution. I was proud. I had not neglected study and education. I thought I knew the facts about evolution, and I didnt believe in it. But now I had to admit I had never pursued a thorough, in-depth research of the particular question. Following on the heels of my wifes fanaticism, this challenge was humiliating. This double jolt to my pride hit me immediately after the second time my business had been destroyed. The effect was devastating. It was utterly frustrating. Nevertheless I was determined to prove both my wife and sister-in-law wrong.
19
The dual challenge drove me into a determined almost night-and-day research. That intensive study continued for six months before I found the proved answer. Yet the study has never ceased t o this day. Both challenges focused on a common starting point-the book of Genesis in the Bible and the subject of origins-although that was only the beginning. These challenges came a t a period in life when I had ample time on my hands. I plunged with intense concentration into the study.
Of all the writings on evolution, Dr. P.E. More alone had culled out many discrepancies in the theory. Yet he, too, went along with the doctrine overall. But now I had, first of all, to prove or disprove the existence of God. It was no casual or superficial study. I continued in this research as if my life depended upon it-as, in actual fact, it did, as well as my marriage. I also studied books on the other side of the question. Suffice it to say here that I did find irrefutable PROOF of the existence of God the Creator-and I found proof positive of the fallacy of the evolutionary theory. The overwhelming array of college brainwashed minds to the contrary notwithstanding. I had the satisfaction of winning the admission of one Ph.D. thoroughly steeped in evolutionary thought-who had spent many years in graduate work a t the University of Chicago and at Columbia-that I had definitely chopped down the trunk of the evolutionary tree. Like Dr. More, though, she had been so thoroughly brainwashed in evolution she had t o continue in what she had acknowledged was PROOF of its falsity. Also I had the enjoyment of being able to cause my sister-in-law t o eat those words branding me as ignorant. All of which was mere vanity on my part, which I had not yet eradicated. I had proved the reality of THE GREAT MAJESTIC GOD! But my wifes challenge was still tormenting my mind. Already, in the evolutionary research, I had studied Genesis. I knew each of the worlds religions had its own sacred writings. Once Gods reality was proved, I had expected to continue in the pursuit of comparative religions t o see if any such sacred writings proved authoritative. Through which of these-if any-did GOD speak to mankind?
21
MYSTERYOFTHE AGES
Since I had to research the Sabbath question anyway, and already I had delved into Genesis, I decided to continue my study in the Bible.
A Doctrine at a Time I came across, early, the passage in Romans 6:23: The wages of sin is death. I stopped, amazed. Wages is what one is paid for what one has done. Here I was staring at a statement diametrically opposite to my Sunday school teaching (prior to age 18). Why, I exclaimed, how can that be? I was taught in church that the wages of sin is EVERLASTING LIFE in an eternally burning hell. Another shock came on reading the last part of the same verse: but the gift of God is eternal life through Jesus Christ our Lord. But, I questioned in disillusionment, I thought I already had eternal life-I am, or I have-an immortal soul. Why should I need it as a gift? I researched the word soul by means of a Bible concordance. Twice I found the expression, The soul that sinneth, it shall die (Ezek. 18:4 and 1820). Then I remembered I had read in Genesis 2 how God said to the first humans, who were souls, But of the tree of the knowledge of good and evil, thou shalt not eat of it: for in the day that thou eatest thereof thou shalt surely die. In Genesis 2:7 I read how God formed man of the dust of the ground and breathed into his nostrils the breath of life, and man (dust-matter) became a living soul. This stated plainly that a soul is physicalformed from matter. I found that the English word soul is translated from the Hebrew nephesh and that in Genesis 1 fowl, fish and animals-all three-were nephesh, as Moses was inspired to write.
22
Next, I happened to read where Jesus said, And no man hath ascended up to heaven, but he that came down from heaven, even the Son of man (John 3:13). I researched the heaven and hell teaching further. I saw where the inspired Peter, on the day he received the Holy Spirit, said, For David is not ascended into the heavens (Acts 2:34). In this in-depth study of the Bible, I had the use of all the biblical helps-concordances, Greek-English and Hebrew-English lexicons, commentaries, Bible dictionaries and religious encyclopedias. The latter three of these, I found, were the works of scholarly but carnal minds. In historical facts and matters of a material and physical nature, they give help in research, but in Gods revelation of spiritual knowledge I found them of little help. I also used, in questionable passages, the Hebrew Old Testament and the Greek New Testament, with the lexicons. And I used every translation or version then published-especially the Moffatt, Ferrar Fenton, Smith-Goodspeed, American Revised and the Williams New Testament.
M y Experience Unique
My research was totally different from that of students in a seminary. They absorb what they are taught in the doctrines of their denomination. Education has become a matter of memory training. The child, and the adult student as well, is expected to accept and memorize whatever is taught. For example, in an elementary grade one of my grandsons was once asked by the teacher, Who discovered America? The Indians, promptly answered the grandson. The teacher was astonished.
23
No, Larry, dont you know t h a t Columbus discovered America? NO, Maam, the Indians were already here to greet Columbus when he finally arrived. The lad was given a zero for his answer and severely instructed t o always remember that the book says Columbus discovered America! A pupil, or a student in high school or university, is graded on memorizing and believing what he is taught by the textbook, the teacher, instructor or professor. In the first dummy copy of the magazine The Plain Truth that I put together in 1927-seven years before the magazine was actually published-I had an artist draw a picture of a schoolroom, with children sitting at the desks, each with a funnel stuck into his or her head. The teacher was pouring out of a pitcher ready-made propaganda into each childs head. A student enrolled a t a Methodist seminary receives Methodist doctrine and teaching into his head. A Catholic student studying in a Catholic seminary is taught Roman Catholic teachings. A student in a Presbyterian seminary is given Presbyterian doctrines. A student in Germany studying history is instructed in one version of World Wars I and 11, but a history student in the United States is taught a somewhat different version. But I had been called specially by the living GOD.I was trying to prove the very opposite of what I found clearly and unmistakably to be what the Bible SAYS! I was taught by Christ what I did not want to believe but what he showed me was TRUE! Jesus Christ is the persona2 Word of God. He, in person, taught the original 12 apostles and the apostle Paul. The Bible is the SAME Word of God IN PRINT today. Thus it was the same Jesus Christ who taught both the
24
original apostles, beginning A.D. 27, and 1,900 years later, beginning 1927, myself. And let me add here that my study of Gods revelation of truth has never ceased. Later Christ used me in founding three liberal arts colleges-including one in England. Through constant study, teaching and collaboration with spirit-minded faculty members in theological courses, my mind has remained OPEN. And knowledge of Gods revealed truth has increased. But in my initial six months intensive in-depth study I was undergoing a process of mlearningdiscovering t h a t church teachings h a d been t h e diametric opposite of Bible TRUTH!
<Eating Crow
This is not the place for a lengthy, detailed account of my intensive search in the Bible, and of my conversion. I had been bent on proving t o my satisfaction that all these churches cant be wrong, for their teachings came from the Bible! The essential point here is the simple fact that I did find irrefutable PROOF of the divine inspiration and supreme AUTHORITY of the Holy Bible (as originally written) as the revealed Word of God. Even all the so-called contradictions evaporated upon unbiased study. The most difficult thing for any human mind is to admit being wrong. It was not more easy for me than for others. But God had brought me, through circumstances, to the point where he had made me willing. To my utter dismay and chagrin, I was forced to eat crow in regard to my wifes supposed fanaticism. It was not what I wanted to believe then. But by that time I had taken a severe beating. I had to accept PROVED truth, contrary to what I had wanted to believe! It was humiliating to have to admit my wife had
25
been right and I had been wrong in the most serious argument that ever came between us.
Disillusionment
But to my utter disappointed astonishment, I found that many of the popular church teachings and practices were not based on the Bible. They had originated, as research in history had revealed, in paganism. Numerous Bible prophecies foretold it. The amazing, unbelievable TRUTH is that the SOURCE of these popular beliefs and practices of professing Christianity was, quite largely, paganism and human reasoning and custom, NOT the Bible! I had first doubted, then searched for evidence, and found PROOF that God exists-that the Holy Bible is, literally, his divinely inspired revelation and instruction to mankind. I had learned that ones God is what a person OBEYS. The word Lord means MASTER-One you OBEY! Most people, I had discovered, are obeying false gods, rebelling against the one true CREATOR who is the of supreme RULER the universe. The argument was over a point of OBEDIENCE to
GOD.
The opening of my eyes to the TRUTH brought me to the crossroads of my life. To accept it meant to throw in my lot with a class of humble and unpretentious people I had come to look upon as inferior. It meant being cut off from the high and the mighty and the wealthy of this world, to which I had aspired. It meant the final crushing of VANITY. It meant a total change of life!
It meant real REPENTANCE, for now I saw that I had been breaking Gods law. I had been rebelling against God in many more ways than just breaking the Sabbath
26
command. It meant turning around and going THE WAY OF GOD-the WAY of his BIBLE-living according to every word in the Bible, instead of according to the ways of society or the desires of the flesh and of vanity. It was a matter of which WAY I would travel for the remainder of my life. I had certainly reached the
CROSSROADS!
But I had been beaten down. God had brought that about-though I didnt realize it then. Repeated business reverses, failure after failure, had destroyed self-confidence. I was broken in spirit. The SELF in me didnt want to die. It wanted to try to get up from ignominious defeat and try once again to tread the broad and popular WAY of vanity and of this world. I had been part of this world. I did not realize, then, that this was not Gods world but Satans. I came to realize that accepting Gods truth meant being called out of this world-forsaking this world and its ways, and even to a great extent my friends and associates in this world. Giving up this world, its ways, interests, pleasures, was like dying. And I didnt want to die. I think one of the greatest tests that everyone whom God has called faces, is giving up this world and being part of it. But now I knew that this worlds way was WRONG! I knew its ultimate penalty was DEATH. But I didnt want to die now! It was truly a battle for LIFE--8 life and death struggle. In the end, I lost that battle, as I had been losing all worldly battles in recent years. In final desperation, I threw myself on his mercy. If he could use my life, I would give it to him-not in a physical suicide, but as a living sacrifice, to use as he willed. It was worth nothing to me any longer. I considered that I was only a worthless piece of human junk not worthy to be cast on the junk pile. Jesus Christ had bought and paid for my life by his
27
death. It really belonged to him, and now I told him he could have it! From then on, this defeated no-good life of mine was GODS. didnt see how it could be worth anything to I him. But it was his to use as his instrument, if he thought he could use it.
JOY in Defeat
This surrender to God-this REPENTANCE-this GIVING UP of the world, of friends and associates, and of everything-was the most bitter pill I ever swallowed. Yet it was the only medicine in all my life that ever brought a healing! For I actually began to realize that I was finding joy beyond words to describe in this total defeat. I had actually found JOY in the study of the Bible-in the discovery of new TRUTHS, heretofore hidden from my consciousness. And in surrendering to GODin complete repentance, I found unspeakable JOY in accepting JESUS CHRISTas personal Savior and my present High Priest. I began to see everything in a new and different light. W h y should it have been a difficult and painful experience to surrender to my Maker and my God? W h y was it painful to surrender to obey Gods right ways? WHY? Now, I came to a new outlook on life. Somehow I began to realize a NEW fellowship and friendship had come into my life. I began to be conscious of a contact and fellowship with Christ, and with God the Father. When I read and studied the Bible, God was talking to me, and now I loved to listen! I began to pray, and knew that in prayer I was talking with God. I was not yet very well acquainted with God. But one gets to be better acquainted with another by constant contact and continuous conversation.
28
So I continued the study of the Bible. I began t o write, in article form, the things I was learning. I did not then suppose these articles would ever be published. I wrote them for my own satisfaction. It was one way t o learn more by the study. And I can say now, with the apostle Paul, that the gospel which [is] preached of me is not after man. For I neither received i t of man, neither was I taught it, but by the revelation of Jesus Christ.. . . But when it pleased G o d . . . to reveal his Son in m e . . . immediately I conferred not with flesh and blood: neither went I [to a theological seminary, but I was taught by Jesus Christ, the Word of God (in writing)] (Gal. 1:ll-12, 15-17). That is why I have said the experience I was painfully subjected to in this original intensive study was unique in human life and conduct in our time. I know of no world religious leader who arrived a t his teachings in such a manner. This worlds religious teachings did not come from GOD!Only God is infallibly correct! I was brought, by the spring of 1927, to a complete MIND-SWEEPING! My mind was being swept clean of previous assumptions and beliefs-I had been brought through a painful experience. Twice profitable businesses had collapsed, leaving me frustrated. Then I was brought to acknowledge that whatever religious beliefs I had held were contrary to the truth of God. Not only what I had believed, but also what the churches believed! I had taken a beating! I had been brought to realize my own nothingness and inadequacy. I had been CONQUERED by the great majestic GOD-brought to a real repentance-and also brought to a NEW ROCK-BASED SOLID FAITH in Jesus Christ and in Gods Word. I had
29
been brought to a complete surrender t o God and to HIS WORD. I was baptized, and the infilling of Gods Holy Spirit opened my mind t o the JOY UNSPEAKABLE of knowing God and Jesus Christ-of knowing TRUTHand the warmth of Gods divine LOVE! What I once hated I now loved. I found the greatest and most absorbing joy of my life in continuing to dig out those gold nuggets of TRUTH from Gods Word. Now came a new enthusiasm in Bible study. And I was led through the years from conversion to understand Gods revelation of these seven biblical mysteries that have baffled the minds of humanity and to find that one and only true Church of God, founded by Jesus Christ on the day of Pentecost, A.D. 31. Evolutionists, educators, scientists, religionists have striven in vain t o solve the mystery of the ages -the origin of matter, the universe, and of man-the mystery of humanity-of awesome human accomplishment paradoxically paralleling human evils-of great minds accomplishing the unbelievable while unable to solve human problems. I now reveal an astounding, rational, common sense breakthrough t o the reader, of the SEVEN MAJOR MYSTERIES that have bewildered all humanity.
30
31
chapter of Isaiah, which I had never understood so perfectly before this living explanation. Hear, 0 heavens, and give ear, 0 earth for the Lord hath spoken, I have nourished and brought up children, and they have rebelled against me. The ox knoweth his owner, and the ass his masters crib but Israel doth not know, my people doth not consider. Ah sinful nation, a people laden with iniquity, a seed of evildoers, children that are corrupters: they have forsaken the Lord.. . they are gone away backward (Isa. 1:2-4). And this was spoken o f ancient Israel, a nation to which God had revealed himself by many evidences and miracles. How much less do other nations know about God-about WHO and WHAT God is! Nevertheless, other nations are human beings just like the nation Israel. It is important at the very outset of this chapter that you notice God calls these humans his own children. Many people say, God just doesnt seem real to me. God is a great mystery to them. Their own human fathers dont seem like a mystery. They seem real.
his invisible nature, namely, his eternal power and deity [spiritual], has been clearly perceived in the things that have been made [physical]. So they are without excuse; for although they knew [about] God they did not honor him as God or give thanks to him, but they became futile in their thinking and their senseless minds were darkened. Claiming to be wise, they became fools (Rom. 1:18-22, Revised Standard Version). The billions now living on earth not only are ignorant of the most important knowledge-wao and WHAT God is-they seem not t o want to know! They are willingly in ignorance of this most important knowledge and relationship possible in human life! Astonishing-but TRUE! And why have humans been willingly ignorant of mans most important relationship? One explanation, only, is possible! All nations have been deceived (Rev. 12:9). And the fact of this universal deception makes certain the fact of a super DECEIVER! More of this, later. God UNREAL to the Ancients The first created man Adam, taking to himself from the forbidden tree the knowledge of good and evil, was at the same time rejecting God as Creator. It is certain that God had revealed somewhat of himself, a certain knowledge to Adam. Nevertheless Adam had cut himself off from God his Creator. Undoubtedly, some of the knowledge that God had imparted to Adam was successfully imparted from father to son for many generations. Jesus had called Abel, Adams second son, righteous Abel. He did the right thing in offering a lamb in sacrifice. Later, Enoch walked with God. God spoke to Noah and gave him instructions for the building of the ark. After the Flood certain historic accounts imply that
33
Shem, one of Noahs three sons, had some knowledge of the true God. But undoubtedly, as generation succeeded generation of humanity, knowledge of God had become greatly distorted. Nimrod, as recorded in chapter 4 of this book, made a virtual god of himself. Through the succeeding generations and centuries knowledge of the true God faded almost completely. The ancient pagan nations made many different idols out of clay, wood, stone and other materials. Many examples of pagan idol gods have been dug up by archaeologists and may be seen in museums today. As the apostle Paul said, they worshipped the creation rather than the Creator (Rom. 1:25). First Century A.D. Concept Coming to the New Testament, we catch a glimpse of the ignorance of any knowledge about God. T h e scholarly of the world in the first century were the Athenian intellectuals. Some of them encountered the apostle Paul in Athens. Then certain philosophers of the Epicureans, and of the Stoicks, encountered him. And some said, What will this babbler say? other some, He seemeth to be a setter forth of strange gods: because he preached unto them Jesus, and the resurrection. And they took him, and brought him unto Areopagus [atop Mars Hill], saying, May we know what this new doctrine, whereof thou speakest, is?. . . Then Paul stood in the midst of Mars hill, and said, Ye men of Athens, I perceive that in all things ye are too superstitious. For as I passed by, and beheld your devotions [objects of worship-Revised Standard Version], I found an altar with this inscription, TOTHE UNKNOWN GOD.Whom therefore ye ignorantly worship, him declare I unto you. God that made the world and all
34
W h o and W h a t Is God?
things therein, seeing that he is Lord of heaven and earth. . . he giveth to all life, and breath, and all things; and hath made of one blood all nations of men for to dwell o n . . . the e a r t h . . . for in him we live, and move, and have our being. . . (Acts 17:18-19, 22-26, 28). And now what of the scholarly of our Western world today? One would think, the most highly educated ought to know WHO and WHAT God is! Suppose you ask at random 100 university deans, DOyou believe in God? Perhaps three or four would answer, Oh, I believe in the existence of God-as a first cause. But they cannot tell you WHO or WHAT God is! They cannot tell you what God is like! God is not real t o them. In other words, he is a mystery. Perhaps another six or eight of the hundred will admit they are agnostics-they do not know for sure whether God exists. I have said that education has become a matter of memory instillation. From elementary grades to higher graduate levels of study, our educational systems inject ready-made concepts, ideologies and a mixture of facts and fables into the unsuspecting minds of children, youths and young adults. Students in our school systems are graded according t o how well they accept, memorize a n d can recite or write in tests what has been taught-whether true or false. Modern education has given universal acceptance to the fable of evolution. Evolution is the agnostics or atheists attempt to explain the existence of a creation without the preexistence of the Creator. It removes God from the picture. It blinds itself t o the mystery by attempting to remove God altogether.
35
entirely materialistic. The modern-skntific concept denies the invisible and t h e s ~ t ~ - a ~ a ~ a ~ existence. Yet all our seemingly unsolvable problems and the evils in this world are spiritual in nature. I quoted above from the first chapter of the book of Romans. The 28th verse says, . . . they did not like to retain God in their knowledge. Little or nothing is taught about God, but even in the elementary grades the basic concept-the APPROACH to knowledge-is evolution. Is it any wonder, then, that the scholarly do not know WHO or WHAT God is? They believe what they have been taught. As I write I recently returned from my second four-day visit in Beijing (Peking), as the first religious leader from the world of Christianity to be invited by the government to speak before large groups at the Chinese capital. I have met in private conference with the vice chairman of the Standing Committee of the National Peoples Congress, Tan Zhen-lin, and now, on this second visit, with Deng Xiaoping, the unquestioned leader of China. In speaking with Chinas leader, I was speaking t o the top official now molding the minds and beliefs of over ONE BILLION people-almost a fourth of all the people on earth. China, in population, is the worlds largest nation. In very ancient times the religion in China was ancestor worship. Then came Confucianism, rivaled by Taoism. Later Buddhism was introduced from India, then Christianity. Today the nation is communist-atheist. I found Chinas leaders to be a very cordial, friendly and courteous people-but knowing WHO and WHAT God is most certainly is not what they are now concerned about. I did not try to tell them WHO and WHAT God is,
_ ^ _ - -
36
but I did tell two large and important audiences of leaders what God is very soon going to do-and I announced this forthcoming book, which I am writing now. India is the second largest nation. What have they known about wno and WHAT God is? NOTHING! Russia is third largest in population. They did have Russian Orthodox Christianity, and now atheism. I am not condemning or judging these people-and I presume they are as well-meaning as any people. God is not judging them Now-as I shall explain later. Neither is he condemning them. He loves them and will call them all to eternal salvation in his own time. But they DO NOT know WHO or WHAT God is. In ancient Egypt they worshiped the gods Isis and Osiris. T h e Greeks a n d Romans anciently h a d mythological gods such as Jupiter, Hermes, Dionysus, Apollo, Diana and many others. But they did not know, and their peoples do not know today, wno and WHAT God is. But WHY?
W h y Willingly Ignorant?
Already, in the quotation from the first chapter of Romans, I have given you a reason-they were willingly ignorant of the things of the true GOD.But W H Y ?Why willingly ignorant? In Romans 8:7 it is stated plainly that the natural mind of humans is hostile against God. This does not necessarily mean that all unconverted human minds are actively, intentionally, maliciously hostile._Most-.-_I_ are passively hostile against God. humans They simply do not normally think about God. If God is mentioned they become embarrassed and often try to change the subject. They probably do not realize, in their own minds, that they have a hostile attitude toward God. Yet that is the very reason, psychologically,
'
37
why they want to avoid the subject. In other words, the average person has an unrealized passive hostility against God. Without realizing it actively, they want God to keep his nose out of their business-except a t a time when they are in deep trouble and they cry out for Gods help. Spiritual things-invisible things-are a mystery to them. They do not understand those things, real though they are, because they cannot see them. They remain a deep mystery so they deny their existence. There was a cause for this willing ignorance. And the Bible clearly tells us that cause, which is dual: 1) what occurred prehistorically, and 2) what God himself instituted following the original sin of Adam. All this (to be explained in the next two chapters), and the CAUSE of all the escalating evils of todays world, are clearly revealed by God Almighty in his Word the Holy Bible. This will be made plain as we progress. But first, what does the Bible reveal about WHO and WHAT is God? It is only in this inspired book that God reveals himself. But mankind in general has never believed God-that is, what God says!God spoke face to face, personally, to Adam and Eve, the first created humans. Then he allowed Satan to approach them. Satan got t o Adam through his wife. Our original parents believed Satan when he said, Ye shall not surely die, after God had said, Thou shalt surely die upon stealing the forbidden fruit. When Jesus Christ spoke on earth 4,000 years later, only 120 people believed what he said (Acts 1:15), though he preached his message from God to multiple thousands. No wonder, then, not one of these religions, sects and denominations, except the small and persecuted Church founded by Jesus Christ (A.D. 31), starting with
38
that 120, believes God, which means these others do not believe what God says in his Word. Gods Word plainly reveals who and what God is! But there is a reason for their ignorance. This will be made clear as we proceed. Just WHO and WHAT, then, is God? How does he reveal himself? Already I have quoted the apostle Paul saying to the Athenian intellectuals that God is the Creator, who designed, formed, shaped and created
MAN.
The prophet Isaiah quotes God himself, saying: To whom then will ye liken me, or shall I be equal? . . . Lift up your eyes on high, and behold who hath created these things, that bringeth out their host by number: he calleth them all by names by the greatness of his might, for that he is strong in power; not one faileth (Isa. 40:25-26). Read this in the James Moffatt translation in modern English To whom will you compare me, then, and equal me? asks the Majestic One. Lift high your eyes, look up; who made these stars? he who marshals them in order, summoning each one by name. For fear of him, so mighty and so strong, not one fails to appear. Further, God himself says to the skeptics: Now, the Eternal cries, bring your case forward, now, Jacobs King cries, state your proofs. Let us hear what happened in the past, that we may ponder it, or show me what is yet to be, that we may watch how it turns out; yes, let us hear what is coming, that we may be sure you are gods; come, do something or other that we may marvel at the sight!-why, taunts God to the doubter, you are things of naught, you can do nothing a t all! (Isa. 41:21-24, Moffatt). These scriptures reveal Gods power but not what God is, in a manner to make
39
God is Creator of A LO L- f everything in the vast universe-the stars, the galaxies in endless space, this earth, man and everything in the earth. That is WHAT God is-what he does. _H~CREATES! He designs, forms and shapes. He gives LIFE! He is the - __ great GIvER._And-hislawz-his-way of&ifezis t h e way of _GIVING, not-GETTING, which is the way of this world. But what is God like? WHO is God? There have been many conceptions. Some believe God is merely the good or good intentions, within each human-merely some part of each human individual. Some have imagined God was some kind of idol composed of gold or silver, or carved out of wood, stone or other material. The Israelites thought, while Moses was communing with God on Mount Sinai, that God was, or looked like, a golden calf. Many think God is a single individual supreme Personage. Some thought he was a spirit. But the generally accepted teaching of traditional Christianity is that God is a Trinity-God in three Persons: Father, Son and Holy Spirit, which they call a Ghost. The word trinity is not found in the Bible, nor does the Bible teach this doctrine. But more about that later.
God in Prehistory
Now lets go back t o the very beginning, in prehistory. If you were asked where in the Bible to find the very earliest description of God in point of the time of his existence, you probably would say, Why, in the very first verse in the Bible, Genesis 1:1, of course. Right?
40
Wrong! In time-order the earliest revelation of WHO and WHAT God is is found in the New Testament: John l:l. In the beginning was the Word, and the Word was with God, and the Word was God. The same was in the beginning with God. All things were made by him; and without him was not any thing made that was made. In him was life; and the life was the light of men (John 1:l-4). The Word in this passage is translated from the Greek logos, which means spokesman, word or revelatory thought. It is the name there used for an individual Personage. But who or what is this Logos? Notice the explanation in verse 1 4 And the Word was made flesh, and dwelt among us, (and we beheld his glory, the glory as of the only begotten of the Father,) full of grace and truth. When he was born as Jesus Christ, he was flesh and blood, materialistic and could be seen, touched and felt. But what was he? As God-as the Logos? That is answered in John 4~24,God is a Spirit, and spirit is invisible. We know what was his form and shape as the human Jesus. But of what form and shape was he as the Word? We will explain that later. The Word, then, is a Personage who was made flesh-begotten by God, who through this later begettal became his Father. Yet a t that prehistoric time of the first verse of John 1, the Word was not (yet) the Son of God. He divested himself of his glory as a Spirit divinity to be begotten as a human person. He was made Gods and born of Son, through being begotten or sired by GOD the virgin Mary. So here we find revealed originally two Personages. One is God. And with God in that prehistoric time was another Personage who also was God-one who later
41
was begotten and born as Jesus Christ. But these two Personages were spirit, which is invisible to human eyes unless supernaturally manifested. Yet a t the time described in verse one Jesus was not the Son of God and God was not his Father.
Who Was Melchisedec? We find regarding the beginning of his existence, something further described in Hebrews chapter 7 . Speaking of Melchisedec, who was king of Jerusalem in the days of Abraham, it says also that he was the Priest of God Most High. This Melchisedec had existed from eternity-without father, without mother, without descent, having neither beginning of days, nor end of life; but made like unto the Son of God; abideth a priest continually (Heb. 7:3). Since Melchisedec was like unto the Son of God, and abides as High Priest forever continually, and J m Christ is-now-High Priest,JMelchisedec and Jesus Christ ~are one and-the same-Person. Therefore Christ was without father, without mother, without descent [in Abrahams time], having neither beginning of days, nor end of life. God also had existed eternally with the Word. Jesus, when he was the Word, was an immortal being who had existed ALWAYS-there never was a time when he did not exist-without beginning of days. He was, then, like the Son of God-but he was not yet the Son of God. He also was God, along with God. These passages show t h a t t h e Word, in the beginning-before ANYTHING had been created-was with God, and he, also, was God. Now how could that be? There might be a man named John. And John might be with the man named Smith, and John might also be Smith because John is the son of Smith, and 42
~
Smith is the family name. Yet they are two separate persons. The only point of difference in that analogy is that the Word, a t the time of John 1:1, was not, yet, the Son of God. But he was with God, and he also was God. They were not yet Father and Son-but they were the GODKINGDOM! That family is composed, now, of God the Father, and Jesus Christ his Son, and many begotten humans who already, NOW,are begotten SONS OF GOD (Rom. 8:14,16; I John 3:2), forming the Church of God. That FAMILY aspect-the GOD FAMILY-is vitally important, and this will be thoroughly explained later. But now, where are we? Long before anything else existed, there did exist two Supreme Beings, immortal, who ALWAYS h a d existed. Your mind cant quite conceive that always, but neither can it quite conceive of what is electricity! Yet you know electricity exists and is real!
breezeway into the giant factory (then the Highland Park factory) and I saw perhaps thousands of men in overalls, working at machines powered with electrical energy. Mr. Ford was called the maker of the Ford car. But he made the cars by these workmen, who used the power of electricity and machines. In the same manner, God the Father is Creator. But he created all things by Jesus Christ. Jesus is the Word. It is written, He spake, and it was done (Ps. 33:9). God tells Christ what to do (John 8:28-29). Jesus then speaks, as the workman, and the Holy Spirit is the POWER that responds and does what Jesus commands. Thus, as we read further, in Colossians 1,beginning verse 12, Giving thanks unto the Father, which hath . . . translated us i n t o t h e kingdom of his dear Son.. . who is the image of the invisible God [same appearance, form and shape and character] . . . for by him were all things created, that are in heaven, and that are in earth, visible and invisible, whether they be thrones, or dominions, or principalities, or powers: all things were created by him, and for him: and he is before all things, and by him all things consist (verses 12-13, 15-17). Therefore Gods Word reveals that God and the Word-two supreme Personages-coexisted ALWAYSand before A N w w i N G had been created-including this earth and the entire universe. In the quotation above, Christ is in the imageform and shape-of God. Perhaps it will make God more real to you when you realize he is in the same form and shape as a human being. More proof of this will be given later. There was a time, therefore, when those two Personages coexisted and NOTHING ELSE did. No third Person is mentioned-no Ghost. Is God,
44
then, limited t o only two Persons? T h e false Trinity teaching does limit God to three Persons. But God is not limited. As God repeatedly reveals, his purpose is t o reproduce himself into what well may become billions of God persons. It is the false Trinity teaching that limits God, denies Gods purpose and has-ahly deceived, l , u c { : the whole Christian world. Both God and the Word themselves are SPIRIT, and project their Spirit. Let me illustrate. By your eyesight you can see something across the room, or see to the sun or even to stars that are many times the size of our sun, only much farther distant. But through your eyesight you cannot act on those objects. In like manner, God can project his spirit t o any place regardless of distance, but through his Spirit God is able to act on such objects or to change it as he wills. Thus, God is omnipresent. How long must they have thought, and planned, and designed, before even beginning to create anything whatsoever! But matter-this earth, the stars, nebulae, galaxies-was not the first thing they created. They created angels before the creation of matter. God speaks of the creation of the earth in the 38th chapter of Job. He says that, a t the creation of the earth, all the angels shouted for joy (verse 7). Therefore all the angels already were in existence when the earth was first created. In Genesis 1:l it speaks of God creating the earth and the heavens. I n the Authorized Version the word heauen-singular-is used. But the original Hebrew as Moses wrote, and as other translations render it, is in the plural-heauens-implying that the whole material universe was created simultaneously with the earth. This is plainly stated in Genesis 2:4: These are the generations [beginnings] of the heavens [plural] and of
45
the earth when they were created, in the day that the Lord God made the earth and the heavens. However, the word day in this context is not necessarily a twenty-four-hour day, but a general period of time. That might have been multiple thousands or millions of years ago. Angels were placed on earth before the creation of man. Since angels are immortal spirit beings, they might have dwelt here thousands or millions of years before the creation of man. How many God does not reveal. The earth, at first, was the abode of angels. But, Jude 6, And the angels which kept not their first estate, but left their own habitation [the earth]. . . .
to think with, without hands and fingers he could not design and make things as a man does. God has feet and toes and a body. God has a mind. Animals have brains, but no mind power like mans. If you know what a man looks like, you know what is the form and shape of GOD,for he made man in his image, after his very likeness! One of Jesus disciples asked him what God the Father looks like. Jesus replied: Have I been so long time with you, and yet hast thou not known me, Philip? he that hath seen me hath seen the Father.. . (John 149). Jesus looked like the Father. Jesus was, actually, God with us (Matt. 1:23). Jesus was the begotten and born Son of God. And what was Jesus appearance? It was that of a human man, for he also was the Son of man. He looked so much like other Jewish men of his day that his enemies bribed Judas to point him out and identify who, in a crowd at night, was Jesus. So now we know God has the same form and shape as a man. We also know he is composed of spirit, not of matter as is man. Spirit is invisible to human eyes, unless manifested by some special process. And if so manifested we would see both God the Father and Christ now glorified in heaven with faces, though formed and shaped like human faces, as bright as the sun full strength! Their eyes flames of fire, feet like burnished brass and hair white as snow (Rev. 1:14-16).
the Son- is - -of-spiritual holiness, rightqusness and that __ _- absoluteperfection. That character might be summed-up in the one word LOVE, defined as an outflowing, loving concern. It is the -~ of giving,-~ way serving, helping, sharjng,not_ the GETLWayl It is the way .devoid -of_coveting,-lust-and-geed, vanity-and selfishness,Fcompetit&n2-strife,-violence_and destruction, -envy-and jealousy, resentment and bitterness.Gods inherent nature - --- way-of -PEACE, of __ is the JUSTICE,_MERCY,-HAPPINESS and- JOY. radiating .outward towardJhose-he-has created! The Word and God LIVED. What did they do? They created. How did they live-what was their life-style? They lived the way of their perfect character-the way of outflowing LOVE. When Jesus was baptized, God the Father said, You are my beLOVED Son. God LOVED the Word. And the Word LOVED God-obeyed him completely. Two cant walk together except they be agreed. They were in total agreement and cooperation. Also two cant walk together in continuous peace except one be the head, or leader, in control. God was leader. Their way of life produced perfect peace, cooperation, happiness, accomplishment. This WAY of life became a LAW. Law is a code of conduct, or relationship, between two or more. One might call the rules of a sports contest the law of the game. The presence of law requires a penalty for infraction. There can be no law without a penalty for its violation.
_-
God-Author of Government
T h e very fact of law presupposes G O V E R N M E N T . Government is the administration and enforcement of
48
law by one in authority. This necessitates authoritative leadership-one in command. When the only conscious Life-Beings existed, God was leader-in authoritative command. Thus, even when the only conscious Life-Beings were God and the Word, there was GOVERNMENT, God in supreme command. The with government of God is of necessity government from the top down. It cannot be government by the consent of the governed. Its laws originate and are handed down from God-never legislated by the people-never dictated by the governed how the government over them shall rule them. Since they created other conscious, thinking life-beings, this very fact of necessity put the GOVERNMENT of God over all creation, with God supreme Ruler. Our human civilization has assumed the prerogative of lawmaking. Human governments, whether city, county, state or national, have lawmaking bodies-city councils, state legislatures, national congress, Parliament, Reichstag, Diet or Knesset. But 6,000 years of human experience have demonstrated t h e u t t e r incapability of humans to decide right from wrong, or t o formulate laws for human conduct and relationships. Human lawmaking bodies have made so many laws that the average policeman in a city could not possibly keep in his mind a fraction of the laws whose violations he is supposed to act upon. Some may remember a comic strip in American newspapers, There ought to be a law. The comic strip was poking fun at the very idea that human lawmakers have made so many laws, and yet fail to cover every possible infraction. Gods law is spiritual and can be summed up in one simple but all-inclusive word-love. His law for the guidance of human conduct is subdivided into the two great commandments, love toward God and love toward neighbor. These, in turn, are subdivided into the 10
49
Commandments. Jesus magnified this law by showing how its principle expands to cover virtually every possible human infraction. The third chapter of I1 Corinthians shows that Gods law is to be a1)plied in principle. It is summed up in one single woIrd, love. Mm~,m~+hnlnoo -,rPnnt +h& h, arrlying . I ~ c v c I c l l G l ~ j u o , :+ : Ic pcLLvb,, bllab, its principle, it is a complete law. There is only one perfect lawmaker, and that is God. Bear in mind the government of God is based on the LAW of God, which is the way of life of outflowing LOVE, cooperation, concern for the good of the governed. And this law of God produces peace, happiness, cooperation through obedience.
On
n--
God Is a Family
Now once again to Genesis 1:l:In the beginning God. . . . This originally was written by Moses as God inspired him. Moses wrote in Hebrew. The Hebrew word translated God is Elohirn-a noun or name, plural in form, but normally singular in grammatical usage. It is the same sort of word as family, church, group-one family consisting of two or more members-one church composed of many members-one group of several persons. It is referring to precisely the same Persons, making up or composing the one God, as we found in John 1:l-the Word and God-and each of those TWO Persons is GOD. INOTHER WORDS, IS NOW A FAMILY of Persons, GOD composed so far of only the Two-God the Father and Christ the Son. But IF the Holy Spirit of God dwells in someone, and he is being led by Gods Spirit, then (Rom. 8:14) he is a begotten son of God. But, at the time of Christs return to earth in supreme power and glory to set up the KINGDOM OF GOD,restoring the GOVERNMENT OF GODabolished by Lucifer, then all being filled and
50
W h o and W h a t Is God?
led by Gods Spirit shall become BORN sons of God. The GOD FAMILY will then RULE ALL NATIONS with t h e GOVERNMENT OF GODRESTORED! The Trinity doctrine limits God t o a supposed three Persons. I t DESTROYS the very gospel of Jesus Christ! His gospel is t h e good news of t h e now soon-coming KINGDOM OF GOD-the only hope of this world and its mixed-up mankind! The Trinity doctrine, by contrast, is the doctrine of t h e great false religion called in Revelation 17:5: Mystery, Babylon the great, the mother of harlots and abominations of the earth. By that doctrine, along with others, Satan has DECEIVED all traditional Christianity.
in I1 Kings 17:23-24 that Shalmaneser, king of Assyria, who had invaded a n d conquered t h e n o r t h e r n kingdom-the kingdom of Israel-moved the people out of their land of Samaria, north of Jerusalem, and moved into that land people of the Babylonish mystery religion from the provinces of Babylon. They were, of course, gentiles. They inhabited this area of northern Palestine in the time of Christ. The Jews of Judea in Christs time would have nothing to do with them, calling them contemptuously dogs. They still adhered t o this pagan Babylonish mystery religion in the first century. In A.D. 33, two years after Jesus Christ from heaven founded the Church of God on that day of Pentecost, the deacon Philip, who later became an evangelist, went down to Samaria and preached Christs gospel. This Simon the Sorcerer came with the crowd to hear him. Simon had bewitched the people of that country, and they followed him as their leader in the Babylonian mystery religion from the least to the greatest, saying, This man is the great power of God (Acts 8:lO). When the people believed Philip, preaching the kingdom of God, they were baptized, and this Simon managed to be baptized with them. Then Simon came to the apostles Peter and John, offering money as a bribe, asking them to give him the power to lay hands on people and have them receive the Holy Spirit. Peter rebuked him strongly. But Simon proclaimed himself a Christian apostle, nevertheless, and called the pagan Babylonian mystery religion Christianity. He accepted the doctrine of grace for the forgiveness of sin (which the pagan religions had never had), but turned grace into license to disobey God (Jude 4). He aspired to turn his pagan religion, under the name Christianity, into a universal religion, to gain thereby the political rule of the world.
52
W h o and W h a t Is God?
Simon, the Pater (Peter) of his counterfeit religion, did not accomplish this in his lifetime. But succeeding leaders, with the headquarters moved t o Rome, did, later, gain political control over the Roman Empire and its medieval successor, called The Holy Roman Empire. This empire is in process of again being resurrected in Europe now!
Counterfeit Gospel
By the sixth decade of the first century, much of the Middle East had turned from the true gospel to a counterfeit (Gal. 1:6-7). As late as the 90s A.D. the apostle John was still living. He wrote the book of Revelation on the Isle of Patmos. A little later the church started by Simon in A.D. 33 was trying t o turn the true Christian Passover (Christ had changed its form from that of sacrificial lambs to unleavened bread and wine) into Babylonian ceremony, now called, in English, Easter-named after the goddess Astarte or Ishtar (pronounced Easter in some Semitic dialects). After the death of the apostle John, a disciple of his, Polycarp, waged a controversy over the PassoverEaster question with the bishop of Rome, by then leader of the church started by Simon. Still later, another disciple of Christs t r u e Christianity, Polycrates, waged a still hotter controversy over the same Passover-Easter question with another bishop of Rome. This theological battle was called the Quartodeciman Controversy. Polycrates contended, as Jesus and the original apostles taught, that the Passover should be observed in t h e new Christian form introduced by Jesus and by the apostle Paul (I Cor. 11), using unleavened bread and wine instead of sacrificing a lamb, on the eve of the 14th Nisan (first month in the
53
sacred calendar, occurring in the spring). But the Rome church insisted that it be observed on a Sunday. About the same time another controversy was raging, between a Dr. Arius, of Alexandria, a Christian leader who died A.D. 336, and other bishops, over calling God a Trinity. Dr. Arius stoutly opposed the Trinity doctrine, but introduced errors of his own. In A.D. 325, the Emperor Constantine called the Nicene Council to settle these controversies. Constantine was not then yet a Christian, but as political ruler he assumed control. The Council approved both the Easter-Sunday doctrine and the Trinity. Constantine, then civil ruler, made it a LAW. But he was not able to make it TRUTH! Satan has deceived the entire world in regard to the very nature of WHO and WHAT God is-as well as of Christ and the Holy Spirit. Also of the GOVERNMENT OF GOD, based on the spiritual LAW OF GOD.And further, of WHAT and WHY man is, what salvation is, how it is received, what is the true gospel, what and why the church is and what of the future!
it threatened the peace of the world. The then pagan Emperor Constantine called this Nicene Council to settle it. The Roman Emperors supporters greatly outnumbered the persecuted true Church of God. You will find a prophecy of these two churches in the book of Revelation. In the 12th chapter is the prophecy of the true Church of God, greatly persecuted. Jesus called it the little flock. In the 17th chapter you will find the prophecy of the counterfeit church-a very great church, named by God Mystery, Babylon the great, the mother of harlots (verse 5). She lined up with and sat astride the political governments. The whole world will gasp in WONDER (verse 8) when this religio-political medieval Holy Roman Empire is brought back to life! It is now in the preliminary stages of forming, starting from the Common Market!
False Scripture Added There is only one small passage in the Authorized Version of the Bible that is generally used by Trinity adherents to support the Trinity doctrine. This passage is found in I John 5:7-8, and is bracketed in the following quotation: For there are three that bear record [in heaven, the Father, the Word, and the Holy Ghost: and these three are one. And there are three that bear witness in earth], the Spirit, and the water, and the blood: and these three agree in one. The bracketed words were added by editors to the Latin Vulgate translation probably in the early fourth century. They do not appear in any of the older Greek manuscripts nor in other modern English translations. They were added to the Latin Vulgate during the heat of the controversy between Rome and Dr. Arius and Gods people. Bible commentaries explain that these words were never written in the apostle Johns manuscript or any
55
existing early copies of it. The apostle John in his three epistles and the Revelation speaks of the Father, and . . . Son (I John 1:3), but never of the Father and the Word, except in this uninspired part of I John 5:7-8. There was a real reason why the archdeceiver Satan wanted that spurious verse added in the Latin Vulgate from which it crept into the Authorized Version. The Trinity doctrine completely does away with the gospel of Jesus Christ. His gospel is the MESSAGE he brought mankind from God the Father, the good news of the coming KINGDOM OF GOD!That is the ONE thing above all Satan wants to defeat. This will become plain as we proceed. One world-famous evangelist said: When I first began to study the Bible years ago, the doctrine of the Trinity was one of the most complex problems I had to encounter. I have never fully resolved it, for it contains an aspect of mystery. Though I d o not totally understand it to this day, I accept it as a revelation of God.. . . To explain and illustrate the Trinity is one of the most difficult assignments to a Christian. Much is also made of the fact that in a number of places in modern translations the masculine pronoun he is carelessly used in connection with the Holy Spirit. But not always-sometimes the Holy Spirit is referred to as it in these very same translations. For example, in the passage describing the first coming of the Holy Spirit for the founding of the Church of God on that memorable day of Pentecost.
[the Holy Spirit in the form of divided tongues] sat upon each of them (Acts 2:2-3). In verse 18, Peter is quoting from the prophet Joel: I will pour o u t . . .of my Spirit. . . . The Holy Spirit, like water or a fluid, can be POURED OUT. Can you pour out a person from one into another-as from God into those assembled there? John 7:37-39: In the last day, that great day of the feast, Jesus stood and cried, saying, If any man thirst, let him come unto me, and drink. He that believeth on me, as the scripture hath said, out of his belly shall flow rivers of living water. (But this spake he of the Spirit, which they that believe on him should receive: for the Holy [Spirit] was not yet given; because that Jesus was not yet glorified.) Again in Acts 10:45,. . . on the Gentiles also was poured out the gift of the Holy [Spirit].
Summary
Finally, in briefest summary: God is a FAMILY composed a t present of the TWO Persons of John 1:l-4, but with many thousands, already begotten by Gods Spirit, in Gods true Church, soon to be born into that divine family at Christs return to earth. Jesus Christ, by his resurrection, was BORN a divine Son of God (Rom. l:4)-the first so born into the God family (Rom. 8:29). Both God and Christ are composed of spirit, formed and shaped as a human person, but with eyes like flames of fire and faces bright as the sun full strength! God is Creator of all that exists. Both God and the Word (who became Christ) have existed eternally and before all else. From them emanates the Spirit of God, by which God is omnipresent and omniscient. God the Father is the divine Father of the God family, into which truly converted Christians shall be born.
57
58
absolutely indiscernible to our five senses. It is the spirit world. In the first chapter of Hebrews, we read of angels serving as Gods secret messengers, sent forth to minister to those God has called to salvation and eternal life. In Ephesians 6 it is stated that our contentions and strivings are in fact not with other human people, but against principalities, against powers, against the rulers of the darkness of this world, against spiritual wickedness [evil spirits] in high places. How can this be? Why is the world filled with such clashings and contentions between human minds? I n Ephesians 2:2, humans have been walking according to the course of this world, according t o the prince of the power of the air [Satan], the spirit that now worketh in the children of disobedience. People simply do not realize that there is an invisible spirit power injecting into their minds these hostile attitudes. Even to professing Christians, these scriptures have been a mystery. Why? This invisible spirit world (Col. 1:15-16) is very real but because it is invisible it has been a mystery. The fact that holy angels and evil spirits are invisible does not negate their existence. In truth the invisible spirit world is more real than the material and the visible. In fact, most people do not know what electricity is but are well aware of its reality. The Bible explains: If our gospel be hid, it is hid to them that are lost: in whom the god of this world [Satan] hath blinded the minds of them which believe not (I1Cor. 4:3-4). Satan is the god of this world. The time of UNDERSTANDING has come.
God and the Word who almost 2,000 years ago became Jesus Christ. God is invisible-the supreme all powerful Spirit Being. We saw that God lives. He acts! What does he do? He is the creating family. Perhaps few realize, the very first thing God created was not the earth, suns, other planets-the universe. Before all these he created the angelic beings-a spirit world of myriads of angelic beings. The Great God through the Word first designed and created these SPIRIT BEINGS-angels, each individually created-millions or perhaps even billions of them! Angels are actual personal spirit beings, each having a mind of greater capacity and ability than human minds, capable of attitudes, purposes and intentions. It is stated that even Jesus as a human was made a little lower than the angels (Heb. 2:7). They are composed wholly of spirit. They were given self-containing life-life inherent-immortality. They have no blood circulating in veins and do not need the breath of air to sustain life, but have self-containing inherent life. Angels are, because created by God, called sons of God (Job 1:6), but they were not begotten and born sons of God. W h y the Creation of Angels? Why were invisible spirit-composeu dllgcla L l c d b C u before all else? Why were they created even prior to the creation of physical matter and the physical universe? Why were they created a t all? Jesus Christ said, I work and my Father works (John 5:17). In John 1:l-5 it is revealed that God and the Word (the God family) live. In the preceding chapter we noted how they lived-in mutual love, total agreement and perfect harmony. But if they lived, what did they
60
do? They created. One might say that by profession they were in the creating business. T o aid them in the work of creating, governing and managing what was t o be created, they first of all created other spirit beings on a lower plane than the God family. Angels were created t o be ministers, agents, helpers in Gods creation. They were created as servants of the living God. From eternity God was supreme, which to our human minds means God sat on the throne of all that existed or was t o exist. In the 25th chapter of Exodus, we find an earthly description of the very throne of God in heaven, in the description of the ark built by Moses under Gods instruction. On either side of Gods throne was a super archangel, a cherub, whose wings stretched out covering the very throne of God. This signifies that these superior angels were involved in t h e very administration of the government of God over all of Gods creation. They were aides, ministers, servants, assisting God. We read about angels in the first chapter of Hebrews. This chapter first speaks of Jesus. He, . . . stamped with Gods own character, sustains the universe with his word of power.. . and thus he is superior to the angels, as he has inherited a Name superior to theirs. For to what angel did God ever say, Thou art my son, to-day have I become thy father? Or again, I will be a father to him, and he shall be a son t o me? And further, when introducing the First-born into the world, he says, Let all Gods angels worship him. While he says of angels, Who turns his angels into winds [spirits], his servants into flames of fire, he says of the Son, God is thy throne for ever and ever, thy royal sceptre is the sceptre of equity: thou hast loved justice and hated lawlessness, therefore God, thy God, has consecrated thee with the oil of rejoicing beyond thy
61
comrades-and, Thou didst found the earth a t the beginning.. . . TOwhat angel did he ever say, Sit a t my right hand, till I make your enemies a foot-stool for your feet? Are not all angels merely spirits in the divine service, commissioned for the benefit of those who are to inherit salvation? (verses 3-10, 13-14, Moffatt translation). Humans are created a little lower than angels, though we have the awesome potential of becoming far greater. This fact is expressed in the second chapter of Hebrews and will be treated in chapter 7 of this work. And in chapter 3 we will show humans may be actually begotten as sons of God, as yet unborn. I t will come as news to most readers that angels were created before the earth and the physical universe were brought into existence. Job 381-7 shows the angels shouted for joy when God first created the earth. It is stated in both Genesis 1and 2 that the earth was created at the same time as the entire physical universe. Angels are invisible, immortal spirit beings with power and knowledge superior to humans (I1Pet. 2:ll). They have seen all the activities of mankind on the earth and therefore know more about the human mind, psychology, sociology, science and all the arts than any living man. Angels serve a great function in carrying out Gods purpose for humanity. They are his invisible agents often ministering in ways few understand to us poor humans who are heirs of salvation.
Personal Experiences
My wife and I have both experienced this in personal incidents. When our elder daughter was a baby, Mrs.
62
Armstrong was sleeping with the child beside her on the inside of the bed against a bedroom wall. She heard a voice calling out, Move Beverly. She thought it was a dream and without waking continued in sleep. She then heard the same voice again, a little louder. She half awakened, saw nothing, again thought it was a dream, turned over and was once again going to sleep, when the voice a third time was heard, this time loud and emphatic: MOVE BEVERLY. Bewildered, she moved the child to the other side of her, and a second or two later, a heavy framed picture that hung on the wall immediately over where the child had been lying crashed down on the bed. It might have crushed the childs head or severely injured her. T h e only explanation was that God sent an angel to save Beverlys life. In the early days of my ministry, about 1934, I was driving a car one very stormy night in a downpour of rain on a highway south of Eugene, Oregon. I was driving about 40 miles an hour on a very winding road. As I approached a sharp curve in the road, the steering wheel of my car suddenly turned sharply to the left, as if wrenched out of my hand by some invisible force. Directly ahead of me was a wrecked truck. I just missed it, passing on its left. It was dark, and a wrecked car was standing just ahead of me. The steering wheel of the car was suddenly wrenched out of my hands, and the car turned sharply toward the right. My car passed between the northbound car and the southbound truck back onto the right lane, with not more than a single inch to spare between the wrecked car and truck. I had never experienced anything like it. The steering wheel of my car was turned by some force out of my control and against my hand holding it straight forward.
63
A previous time, late in 1927, within the first year of my conversion, I encountered a similar experience.
But I do know what he has promised to do, and I believe God will hear me just as willingly as he will Mrs. McPherson-if only you will BELIEVE in what GODhas promised, and put your faith in HIM and not in the person who prays for you. They gave me their address, just south of Foster Road. The next day I borrowed my brother Russells car and drove out. I had learned, in studying the Bible on the subject of healing, that there are two conditions that God imposes: 1) we must keep his commandments and do those things that are pleasing in his sight (I John 3:22); and 2) we must really BELIEVE (Matt. 9:29). Of course I realized that many people might not have come into the understanding about keeping all of Gods Commandments-he does look on the heart. It is the spirit, and willingness t o obey. And therefore some who really BELIEVE are healed, even though they are not strictly commandment keepers. But once the knowledge of the truth comes, they must OBEY. In this case I felt sure that God wanted me to open the minds of these people about his Commandments, and that SIN is the transgression of Gods LAW. Consequently, I first read the two scriptures quoted above, and then explained what I had been six months learning about Gods law-and particularly about Gods Sabbath. I wanted to know whether this cripple and his wife had a spirit of WILLINGNESS to obey God. They did not. I found they were Pentecostal. They attended church for the good time they had there. They talked a good deal about the good time they enjoyed a t church. They scoffed and sneered about having to obey God. I told them that, since they were unwilling to obey God and comply with Gods
65
Well, I thought, Ill drive to the end of this block and turn left, and then back onto Foster Road. But, a long block south on this street, it turned right only. There was no street turning east. In getting back onto Foster Road I was now compelled to drive past the home of the cripple. Could it possibly be that an angel forced the steering wheel t o turn me in here? I wondered, somewhat shaken by the experience. I decided I had better stop in at the cripples home a moment, to be sure. I found him stricken with blood poisoning. The red line was nearing his heart. I told them what had happened. I know, now, I said, that God sent an angel to turn me in here. I believe that God wants me to pray for you-that he will heal you of this blood poisoning to show you his power, and then give you one more chance to repent and be willing to obey him. And if you will do that, then he will straighten out your twisted spine and heal you completely. SO now, if you want me to do so, I will pray for you and ask God to heal you of this blood poisoning. But I will not ask God to heal your spine unless and until you repent and show willingness to obey whatever you yourself see God commands. They were now desperate. He probably had about 1 2 hours to live. They were not joking and jesting lightly about the good times at Pentecostal meetin. They wanted me to pray. I was not an ordained minister, so I did not anoint with oil. I had never yet in my life prayed aloud before others. I explained this to them, and said I would simply lay hands on the man and pray silently, as I did not want any self-consciousness of praying aloud for the first time
67
to interfere with real earnestness and faith. I did have absolute faith he would be healed of t h e blood poisoning. He was. I returned the next day. The blood poisoning had left him immediately when I prayed. But, to my very great sorrow and disappointment, they were once again filled with levity, and sarcasm about Gods law. Again they were jestingly talking about having a good time a t Pentecostal meetings. There was no more I could do. It was one of the great disappointments of my life. I never saw or heard from any of them again.
The Bible mentions three angels of high r a n k Lucifer (Isa. 1412), now Satan the devil; Gabriel, who appeared to Daniel on two occasions (Dan. 816; 921), to Zacharias, the father of John the Baptist (Luke 1:19), and later Mary, the mother of Jesus (Luke 1:26);and third, Michael, called one of the chiefprinces (Dan. 10:13), and whom Jude identifies as an archangel (Jude 9). Michael is the archangel specifically assigned to protect and minister to the 12 tribes of Israel (Dan. 12:l; 10:2-13, 21) and to the true Church of God today (Rev. 12:7).
But there was one super-important quality that even Gods creative powers could not create instantly by fiat-the same perfect, holy, righteous CHARACTER inherent in both God and the Word! This kind of character must be DEVELOPED, by the CHOICE and the INTENT of the one in whom i t comes t o exist. So mark well this super-vital truism-that perfect, holy and righteous character is the supreme feat of accomplishment possible for Almighty God t h e Creator-it is also the means t o his ultimate supreme PURPOSE! His final objective! But HOW? I repeat, such perfect character must be developed. It requires the free choice and decision of the separate entity in whom it is t o be created. But, further, even then it must be instilled by and from the Holy God who, only, has such righteous character t o endow. But what do we mean by righteous character? Perfect, holy and righteous character is the ability in
69
such separate entity to come to discern the true and right way from the false, to make voluntarily a full and unconditional surrender to God and his perfect way-to yield to be conquered by God-to determine even against temptation or self-desire, to live and to do the right. And even then such holy character is the gift of God. It comes by yielding to God to instill HIS LAW (Gods right way of life) within the entity who so decides and wills. Actually, this perfect character comes only from God, as instilled within the entity of his creation, upon voluntary acquiescence, even after severe trial and test. I have devoted a few paragraphs to this point because it is the supreme pinnacle means in Gods overall PURPOSE! Now as to the prehistoric angels: God 1) created them with minds capable of thinking, reasoning, making choices and decisions with self-will; and 2) revealed plainly to them HIS TRUE AND RIGHTEOUS WAY. But God of necessity allowed them free moral agency in accepting Gods right way, or turning to contrary ways of their own devising. What was Gods ULTIMATE OBJECTIVE for the angels? t Beyond question it is that which, now, because of angelic rebellion, has become the transcendent potential ,-of humans! As the testing ground, and opportunity for positive and active creative accomplishment, God createdbrought into existence-the entire vast material universe. First of all, God had created angels. After that, and for angels and for humans who were to be created later, God formed and brought into existence the earth and the entire universe. God now created not only matter, but with and in it energy and such laws as man has discovered in the fields
70
of physics and chemistry. God formed matter t o be present in both the organic and the inorganic states. And so we come now to that which is revealed in Genesis 1:l: In the beginning [of the physical universe] God created the heavens and the earth. These are material and physical. As previously stated, in the Authorized Version will be found the word heaven in the singular. But this originally was written by Moses in Hebrew. And in the Hebrew the word is in the plural-heavens-thus including not only our earth, but the entire material
UNIVERSE.
It is therefore indicated that a t that time-after the creation of angels-the entire universe was brought into existence a t the same time as the creation of our earth. I find strong indication of this in other biblical internal evidence, and also it is definitely stated in Genesis 2:4.
creation of the earth-and probably before the material universe. The suns, planets and astral bodies are material substance. Angels are individually created spirit beings, composed solely of spirit. It will come as a surprise to many to learn that angels inhabited this earth BEFORE the creation of man. This passage from Job implies it.
culminating with the Flood, was worldwide, universal sin. Notice: . . . the earth was filled with violence. . . for all flesh had corrupted his way upon the earth. . . for the earth is filled withviolence . . . (Gen. 6:ll-13). But Noah found grace in the eyes of the Lord.. . . Noah was a just man and perfect in his generations, and Noah walked with God (verses 8-9). All flesh had sinned-over the whole earth. But only Noah walked with God. So, the Flood destroyed the whole earth-all but Noah and his family. The homosexual and other sins of Sodom and Gomorrah spread over the territory of those two cities. And physical destruction came t o their entire area. The sin of the angels was worldwide; the destruction of the physical was worldwide. (And there is reason to believe, as will be explained in chapter 7, universe wide.) The verses quoted above place the sinning of the angels prior to the antediluvian sins that started with Adam, prior to the creation of man. And that should be a surprise revealing of one phase of the mystery! Angels inhabited this earth before the creation of man. It is revealed in Isaiah 14 and Ezekiel 28, that God placed the archangel Lucifer, a cherub, on a throne on the earth. He was placed there as a ruler over the entire earth. God i n t e n d e d him t o rule t h e e a r t h by administering the government of God over the earth. And the government of God was administered on earth until the rebellion of the sinning angels. How long these angels inhabited the earth before the creation of man is not revealed. It might have been millions-or even billions-of years. More on that later. But these angels sinned. Sin is the transgression of Gods law (I John 3:4). And Gods law is the basis of Gods government. So we know these angels, apparently a third of all the angels (Rev. 12:4), sinned-rebelled against the government of God. And sin carries penalties. The penalty
73
for the sin of the angels is not death, as it is for man. Angels are immortal spirit beings and cannot die. These spirit beings had been given dominion over the PHYSICAL EARTH as a possession and an abode. The universal, worldwide sin of the angels resulted in the physical destruction of the face of the earth.
God Rules His Creation
God is Creator. God is also Ruler over his creation. He preserves what he creates by his government. What God creates, he has created for a purpose-to be used, improved, developed, preserved and maintained. And this use is regulated by Gods government. When the angels rebelled against Gods government, the development and improvement of the earth-putting the icing on the cake-ceased. The preservation and development of the physical earth and all its original beauty and glory ceased-and physical destruction to the surface of the earth resulted! By this angelic sin, Lucifer became Satan the devil and his angels became demons. God is Creator, Preserver and Ruler. Satan is destroyer! So, now we read in Jude 6-7: And the angels which kept not their first estate, but left their own habitation, he hath reserved in everlasting chains under darkness unto the judgment of the great day. Even as Sodom and Gomorrha, and the cities about them in like manner, giving themselves over to fornication, and going after strange flesh, are set forth for an example, suffering the vengeance of eternal fire. Now back to Genesis 1:l-2. Verse 1, as stated above, implies a perfect creation. God is the author of life, of beauty, of perfection. Satan has brought only darkness, ugliness, imperfection, violence. Verse 1shows the creation
74
of a perfect, if unfinished earth, glorious and beautiful. Verse 2 reveals the result of the sin of the angels. And the earth was [became] without form, and void. The words without form, and void are translated from the Hebrew tohu and bohu. A better translation is waste and empty or chaotic, in confusion and in a state of decay. The word was is elsewhere in Genesis also translated became, as in Genesis 19:26. In other words, the earth, originally created perfect and beautiful, had now become chaotic, waste and empty, like our moon, except earths surface was covered with water. David was inspired to reveal how God renewed the face of the earth: Thou sendest forth thy spirit, they are created: and thou renewest the face of the earth (Ps. 104:30).
A Surprising Truth
Now another surprise for most readers. Here is another bit of the missing dimension in knowledge, actually revealed in the Bible, but unrecognized by religion, by science and by higher education. From verse 2 of Genesis 1 on, the remainder of this first chapter of the Bible is not describing the original creation of the earth. But it is describing a renewing of the face of the earth, after it had become waste and empty as a result of the sin of the angels. What is described from verse 2 on, in the supposed creation chapter of the Bible, did occur, according to the Bible, approximately 6,000 years ago. But that could have been millions or trillions of years after the actual creation of the earth described in verse 1! I will comment later on the length of time it might have taken before all earths angels turned t o rebellion.
75
The earth had become waste and empty. God did not create it waste and empty, or in a state of decay. God is not the author of confusion (I Cor. 14:33). This same Hebrew word-tohu-meaning waste and empty, was inspired in Isaiah 4518, where it is translated in vain. Using the original Hebrew word, as originally inspired, it reads: For thus saith the Lord that created the heavens; God himself that formed the earth and made it; he hath established it, he created it not in vain [tohu], he formed it to be inhabited. Continue now with the remainder of verse 2 of Genesis 1 (the earth had become chaotic, waste and empty): And darkness was upon the face of the deep [the ocean or fluid surface of the earth]. And the Spirit of God moved upon the face of the waters. And God said, Let there be light: and there was light. And God saw the light, that it was good: and God divided the light from the darkness (verses 2-4). Satan is the author of darkness. The rebellion of the angels had caused the darkness. God is the author of light and truth. Light displays and enhances beauty, and also exposes evil. Darkness hides both. The verses that follow in this first chapter of the Bible describe the renewing of the face of the earth, yielding beautiful lawns, trees, shrubs, flowers, vegetation-then the creation of fish and fowl, animal life, and finally man.
The Great Lucifer But first, before coming to man, we need to fill in the prehistory portion. How did this sin of the angels come to take place? How did it start? Remember, God the Creator preserves, improves and enhances what he creates by his government.Eh&
76
he creates is created to be used. This earth was t o be inhabited and used by angels, originally. When God placed angels-apparently a third of all (Rev. 12:4)-on the newly created, perfect, beautiful and glorious earth, he set over them, on a throne, to administer the government of God, an archangel-the great cherub Lucifer. There were only two other beings of this extremely high rank of cherub, Michael and Gabriel. So far as is revealed, these are the supreme pinnacle of spirit-composed beings within Gods power t o create. This Lucifer was a super being of awesome, majestic beauty, dazzling brightness, supreme knowledge, wisdom and power-perfect as God created him! (Ezek. 28:15). But remember, there is one thing God cannot create automatically and instantly by fiat, and that is perfect righteous character. So God of necessity created in him the power of choice and decision, or he could not have been a being of individuality and character. At this juncture a truth must be explained almost never understood. God creates in a principle of duality. I have compared it to a woman baking a cake. When she takes the cake out of the oven, it is not yet a finished production until she puts the icing on the cake. When God created the earth and other planets this system of duality was involved. What had been created was perfect as far as it existed u p t o that point. But it was not yet a finished or completed creation. God intended the angels t o add their own workmanship t o the earths surface. He intended them to work over the surface of the earth, to improve it, to embellish it, beautify it-in other words put the icing on the cake. The same principle of duality applies t o t h e creation of the angels. Perfect righteous character cannot be automatically created by fiat. The angels
77
themselves, of necessity, were required to have their part in the development of character, and their creation could not be actually finished until this character had been perfected.
Israel-if you know who Israel is today, and I do not mean Judah, known as the Israelis today. All that involves a number of other prophecies, which there is not room here to explain. (This is explained in our free book T h e United States and Britain in Prophecy.) But this king of Babylon shall at the time of this prophecy have been utterly defeated by the intervention of the living Christ in his power and glory. Continue on: The whole earth is a t rest, and is quiet: they break forth into singing. Yea, the fir trees rejoice.. . and the cedars of Lebanon, saying, Since thou art laid down, no feller is come up against us (verses 7-8). (I want t o interpose an interesting bit of information right here. The cedars of Lebanon, biblically famous, are almost totally cut down. Only one small clump of these trees remains, high in the mountains. I have seen and photographed them. However, perhaps the finest specimen of the cedars of Lebanon surviving on earth is on what was previously our Ambassador College campus in England. We prized it highly. I t is interesting to see that this prophecy, written some 500 years B.c., should record the fact that these beautiful and stately trees would become so largely felled.) This passage in Isaiah 14 speaks of the doom of this coming human king at the hands of the glorified, all-powerful Christ. It refers to him as Satans chief political ruler and military destroyer, to be totally deceived by Satan in the years very shortly ahead of us.
which didst weaken the nations! A better translation here is: How art thou, who didst weaken the nations, cut down to the ground. The RSV translates it: How you are cut down to the ground, you who laid the nations low! This the former Lucifer did through the human political-military leader in his power-spoken of in the first 11 verses. The name Lucifer means Shining star of the dawn, or Bringer of light, as God first created him. Now continue: For thou hast said in thine heart, I will ascend into heaven, I will exalt my throne above the stars [angels] of God. Notice, Lucifer had a throne; he was a ruler. His throne was on earth, for he was going to ascend into heaven. Continue: I will sit also upon the mount of the congregation [Gods heavenly throne], in the sides of the north I will ascend above the heights of the clouds; I will be like the most High (verses 13-14). Actually, it is plain that Lucifer had nothing less in mind than knocking the Creator God off his throne and becoming supreme God himself. Apparently he planned to put himself in place of God, over the universe! But finally, as the context returns again t o the human type: Yet thou shalt be brought down to hell [Heb. sheol], to the sides of the pit (verse 15). From t h a t point, the thought returns t o the human king. Lucifer was the supreme masterpiece of Gods creative power, as an individually created being, threatening, as a Frankenstein monster, to destroy his own maker-and assume all his powers t o rule the whole universe. Literally this prophecy is speaking of a war in heaven to occur in our present time described in Revelation 12:7-9: And there was war in heaven:
80
Michael and his angels fought against the dragon; and the dragon fought and his angels, and prevailed not; neither was their place found any more in heaven. And the great dragon was cast out, that old serpent, called the Devil, and Satan, which deceiveth the whole world: he was cast out into the earth, and his angels were cast out with him. And also Daniel 121-2: And a t that time shall Michael stand up, the great prince which standeth for the children of thy people: and there shall be a time of trouble, such as never was since there was a nation even to that same time: and a t that time thy people shall be delivered, every one that shall be found written in the book. And many of them that sleep in the dust of the earth shall awake, some to everlasting life, and some to shame and everlasting contempt. Satans rebel rule was NOT a government based upon the principle of love-of giving, of outgoing concern for the good of others, but based on SELFCENTEREDNESS, on vanity, lust and greed, on envy, jealousy, the spirit of competition, hatred, violence and destruction, on darkness and error, instead of light and truth, on ugliness instead of beauty. Notice here, once again, the principle of duality. Isaiah 14:12-14 applies to a time prior to the creation of the first human, Adam. But in Revelation 12:7 and in Daniel 12:l Satan at the end of the 6,000 years allotted to his rule on earths throne, tries once again to seize Gods throne in heaven.
commercial metropolis of the ancient world, even as Babylon was the political capital. Tyre was the New York, the London, the Tokyo, or the Paris of the ancient world. The ancient Tyre, port of the worlds shippers and merchants, gloried herself in her beauty, even as Paris in our time. Chapter 27 carries on with comparisons to passages in the 18th chapter of the book of Revelation referring to a politico-religious leader to come (verses 9-19). But coming to chapter 28, the theme comes more completely to the time just now ahead of us, the same time depicted in Isaiah 14. Ezekiel 28 speaks of the prince of Tyre, an earthly ruler, of whom the ancient king of Tyre was a type. God says to the prophet Ezekiel: Son of man, say unto the prince of Tyrus [actually referring to a powerful religious leader to arise SOON, in our time], Thus saith the Lord God; Because thine heart is lifted up, and thou hast said, I am a God, I sit in the seat of God, in the midst of the seas; yet thou art a man, and not God, though thou set thine heart as the heart of God: Behold, thou art wiser than Daniel; there is no secret that they can hide from thee: with thy wisdom and with thine understanding thou hast gotten thee riches, and hast gotten gold and silver into thy treasures [or treasuriesRSV] . . . and thine heart is lifted up because of thy riches: therefore thus saith the Lord God; Because thou hast set thine heart as the heart of God; behold, therefore I will bring strangers upon thee, the terrible of the nations.. . they shall bring thee down to the pit, and thou shalt die the deaths of them that are slain in the midst of the seas (Ezek. 28:2-8). (Compare with I1 Thessalonians 2:3-4, speaking of that man of s i n . . . who opposeth and exalteth
82
himself above all that is called God . . .so that he as God sitteth in the temple of God, shewing himself that he is God.)
and emotionally excitable beats-unhappy, discouraged moods. Think of all the supreme talent, ability and potential in a being created with such capacities. And all perverted! All gone sour-all dissipated, turned to hatred, destruction, hopelessness! Yet, take courage. The awesome human potential, if we care enough about it to resist Satans wiles and evils and discouragements and to persevere in Gods way, is infinitely superior and higher than Luciferseven as created, before he turned to rebellion and iniquity! But continuing the particular revelation of this crucially important missing dimension in knowledge: Thou art the anointed cherub that covereth; and I have set thee so, says God of this Lucifer. This takes us back to the 25th chapter of Exodus, where God gave Moses the pattern for the ark of the covenant. The description begins with verse 10, and verses 18-20 show, in the material pattern, the two cherubs who were stationed at each end of the very throne of God in heaven-the throne of the governrnent of God over the entire universe. The wings o . the two cherubs covered the f throne of God.
.. , . This Lucifer, then, haa Deen stationeu at tne very throne of God. He was trained and experienced in the administration of the government of God. God chose such a being, well-experienced and trained, to be the king ruling the government of God over the angels who inhabited the whole earth. Continue: . . . thou wast upon the holy mountain of God; thou hast walked up and down in the midst of the stones of fire. This is not talking about any human being. But continue: Thou wast perfect in thy ways
1 1
I
,1
84
from the day t h a t thou wast created, till iniquity [lawlessness] was found in thee (Ezek. 28:15). He had complete knowledge, understanding and wisdom. But he also was given full powers of reasoning, thinking, making decisions, making his choice. And, with all this foreknowledge-even of results and consequencesthis superb being, the highest that even God could c r e a t e by f i a t , t u r n e d t o rebellion a g a i n s t h i s Maker-against the way that produces every good. He turned to lawlessness. He had been trained in the administration of perfect law and order. As long as Lucifer continued in this perfect way, there was happiness and joy unspeakable over the whole earth. There was glorious peace-beautiful harmony, perfect love, cooperation. The government of God produced a wonderfully happy state-as long as Lucifer was loyal in the conduct of Gods government.
T y &
er
, z y y , j e A l u j y and resentmeni over an imaginKditfn -ke into disloyalty. Then he uses that one or two, like a rotten apple in a crate, to stir up resentment, feelings of self-pity, disloyalty a n d rebellion in others next to them. And, as each rotten apple rots those next to it until the whole crate is rotten, so Satan proceeds. If, in the government of God on earth today, the rotten apples are not thrown out early enough, they would destroy the whole government. But, once thrown out of the crate, they cannot do any more damage to those in the crate. But think how long it must have taken the soured and embittered Lucifer to turn millions of holy angels into resentment, bitterness, disloyalty, and finally open and vicious rebellion. It could have taken hundreds, thousands or millions of years. This was all before the first human was created. All this happened after the original creation of the earth, described in verse 1of Genesis 1. Verse 2 of this creation chapter describes a condition resulting from this sin of the angels. The events described in verse 2, therefore, may have occurred millions of years after the original creation of the earth. T h e earth, therefore, may have been created millions of years ago. But continue this passage in Ezekiel 28: By the multitude of thy merchandise they have filled the midst of thee with violence, and thou hast sinned: therefore I will cast thee as profane out of the mountain of God: and I will destroy [remove] thee, 0 covering cherub, from the midst of the stones of fire. Thine heart was lifted up because of thy beauty, thou hast corrupted thy wisdom by reason of thy brightness: I will cast thee to the ground. . . (verses 16-17). At this point the context returns to the soon-to-appear, human,
86
religious-political ruler-of whom the prince of ancient Tyre was a forerunner. Earlier in this chapter, I showed you how physical destruction, ugliness and darkness had covered the face of the earth, as the result of the sin of Lucifer (who is now the devil) and these angels that sinned (now demons), and how in six days God had renewed the face of the earth (Gen. 12-25). W h y the Creation of MAN? But why did God create man on the earth (Gen. 1:26)? Look at this situation as God does. God has given us humans minds, like the mind of God, only inferior and limited. God made us in his image, after his likeness (form and shape), only composed of matter instead of spirit. But God says, Let this mind be in you, which was also in Christ Jesus (Phil. 2 5 ) . We can, to some degree, think even as God thinks. How must God have looked at the situation, as he started renewing the face of the earth-after the colossal debacle of the angels! He had created a beautiful, perfect creation in the earth. He populated it with holy angels-probably millions of them. He put over them, as king, on an earthly throne, the archangel-the cherub Lucifer. Lucifer was the supreme masterpiece of Gods creative power as a single separately created spirit being. He was the most perfect in beauty, power, mind, knowledge, intellect, wisdom, within the almighty power of God to create. God can create nothing higher or more perfect, by instantaneous fiat. Yet this great being, knowledgeable, trained and experienced at Gods own throne in heaven over the universe and the administration of the government of God, had rejected that government, corrupted his way,
ai
rebelled against administering or even obeying it. He had led all his angels astray and into the sin of rebellion. Now consider further. Apparently t h e entire universe had been created also at the time of the earths creation. There is no evidence either in Gods revealed Word, nor in science, that any of the planets in endless outer space had been inhabited with any form of life. But God does nothing in vain. He always has a purpose. Apparently all such planets in the entire universe N O W a r e waste a n d empty-decayed (tohu a n d bohu)-like the earth was, as described in Genesis 1:2. But God did not create them in such conditions of decay-like our moon. Decay is not an original created condition-it is a condition resulting from a process of deterioration. Evidently if the now fallen angels had maintained the earth in its original beautiful condition, improved it, carried out Gods instructions, and obeyed his government, they would have been offered the awesome potential of populating and carrying out a tremendous creative program throughout the entire universe. When they turned traitor on earth, their sin must have also brought simultaneously physical destruction t o t h e other planets throughout t h e universe, which were potentially and conditionally put in subjection to them.
and perfect they shouted spontaneously for JOY (Job 3&4-7). It was to provide a glorious opportunity for them. They were to work it, produce from it, and preserve and increase its beauty. And at this point, it is well to understand the nature of Gods original creation: It is like t h e unfinished furniture available in some stores. This furniture is in the raw-it is finished all but for the final varnish, polish or paint. Some can save money by doing this finishing themselves-provided they have the skill to do so. This furniture may be of fine and superb quality-yet lacking the final beautifying completion. So it is with Gods creation. It is perfect, but subject to a beautifying finish that God intended angels to accomplish. The original unfinished creation was produced by God alone. But he intended angels, prehistorically, and M A N , now, to utilize creative power-to finish this part in Gods creation-of adding the final beautifying and utilitarian phases of what shall be the FINAL COMPLETED CREATION! And whether or not it had been revealed to the angels, it was a supreme TRIAL AND TEST. It was to be the PROVING GROUND of obedience to GODSGOVERNMENT and their fitness to develop into final finished creation the millions of other planets in the vast universe. For what is revealed in Gods Word indicates that God had created the entire PHYSICAL universe at the same time he created the earth. The seventh word in Genesis 1:l should be translated heavens. This word includes the vast universe, not just this earths atmosphere. Radioactive elements and the law of radioactivity prove that there was a time when MATTER did not exist. GODis a spirit. God is composed of spirit. God was
89
before ALL ELSE-the CREATORof all. Angels were created prior to the earth. What God reveals strongly implies that matter had never existed before the original creation of the earth-that the entire physical universe was brought into being at that time.
GOD!
He intended angels to have a vital part in the final creation of the endless universe! (But God may not have then fully revealed this awesome potential to the angels, for one third of them set out to take it from him by force, without first qualifying.) For this far-reaching purpose, God established his GOVERNMENT on earth over them. The administration of the GOVERNMENT OF GOD over this globe was delegated to the super archangel-the great cherub Lucifer. Bear in mind that even the holy angels and archangels-including this super cherub Lucifer-of necessity were endowed with ability to think, to reason, to form attitudes, and to make choices and decisions. As explained previously, God started this Lucifer out with everything going for him. He sealed up the sum of wisdom, beauty and perfection. He was PERFECT in all
90
his ways from t h e instant he was created UNTIL INIQUITY-rebellion, lawlessness-was found in him (Ezek. 2815). He had been trained and was thoroughly experienced in administration of the GOVERNMENT OF GODat the very throne of the endless UNIVERSE! He was one of the two cherubs whose wings covered the throne of God the MOST high (Ezek. 2814; Ex. 2520).
aggression and violence to attempt to depose God and seize the throne of the UNIVERSE. As long as Lucifer remained loyal and administered the GOVERNMENT OF GODfaithfully, this earth was filled with wonderful and perfect PEACE. The angels were vigorously HAPPY to the extent of JOY! The law of Gods government is THE WAY OF LIFE that CAUSES and produces peace, happiness, prosperity and well-being. Sin is the WAY OF LIFE that has caused all existing EVILS. The penalty of sin by the angels was not death-for God had made them immortal spirit beings who cannot die. What God gave them was THIS EARTH as their abode and opportunity to qualify to possess and beautify the entire UNIVERSE. Their penalty (they are still awaiting final judgment up to now) was disqualification-forfeiture of their grand opportunity, perversion of mind, and a colossal e a r t h w i d e CATACLYSM of destruction wreaked upon this earth. As a result, the earth came to the condition briefly described in Genesis 1:2. Lucifer was created a perfect bringer of LIGHT. Now he became author of DARKNESS, error, confusion and evil. So the rebellion of the angels that sinned (I1 Pet. 2:4-6; Jude 6-7; Isa. 14:12-15; Ezek. 2812-17) brought this extreme cataclysm to the earth. How must God have looked at this situation after the colossal debacle of Lucifer and the angels that sinned? LUCIFER was created the most perfect in beauty, mentality, knowledge, power, intellect and wisdom within the almighty power of God to create in a being, with power to think, reason, make choices and decisions on his own. God knew that no higher, more perfect being could be created as an initial creation.
92
Origin of Demons Yet this superior being, trained and experienced at the very throne of the GOVERNMENT OF GOD over t h e universe, had resorted to wrong reasoning and made a diabolical perverted decision. He worked on the angels under him until he turned their minds to rebellion also. This, incidentally, might have taken Lucifer millions of years. In all probability he had to begin perverting the minds of his angels one a t a time, a t first. He had t o cause them to feel dissatisfied, wronged by God, and inject into them resentment and bitterness. When Lucifer allowed thoughts of vanity, jealousy, envy, lust and greed, then resentment and rebellion, to enter and Occupy his mind, SOMETHING HAPPENED TO HIS MIND! His-mjnd-becamepeyv_ert_e_d,distorted,.i%hkd! Histhinking-became warped. God gave him &and the -angels control over their ow-n minds,~heycan-never __stra';ghten -themL@-nevervag&n thigkAationally, ( honestly, rightly. D..~%Q~ l ; r J i.full Kma4c+ &$ &r T h e y we*I have had a number of personal experiences with demons through a few demon-possessed people. I have cast out demons through the name of Christ and power of the Holy Spirit. Some demons are silly, like spoiled children. Some are crafty, sharp, shrewd, subtile. Some are belligerent, some are sassy, some are sullen and morose. But all are perverted, warped, twisted. Do Satan and his demons affect and even influence humans and even governments today? Do evil spirits affect even your own life? These questions will be answered in chapter 4 of this book. As God surveyed this cataclysmic tragedy, he must have realized that since the highest, most perfect being within his almighty power t o create, had turned t o 93
rebellion, it left God himself as the only being who would not and cannot sin. And God is the Father of the divine God family or kingdom. Notice John 1:l-5. The Word who was made flesh (verse 14) has existed always-from eternity-with the Father. God the Father has created all things-the entire universe-by him who became Jesus Christ (Eph. 3:9; Col. 1~16-17). When Jesus was on earth, he prayed to God, his Father in heaven. The Father spoke of Jesus as my beloved son, in whom I am well pleased. Jesus lived on earth as a human, tempted in all points as we are, yet without sin. The fourth word in the English Bible is God (Gen. 1:l). And the original Hebrew word is Elohim, a noun plural in form, like the English word family, church or group. The divine family is God. There is one God-the one family, consisting of more than one Person. God saw that no being less than God, in the God family, could be certainly relied on never to sin-to be like God-who cannot sin. T fulfill his purpose for the entire O vast universe, God saw that nothing less than himself (as the God family) could be absolutely relied upon to carry out that supreme purpose in the entire universe.
And that is why God p u t m a n o n t h e earth! That is what caused God to do this most colossal, tremendous thing ever undertaken by t h e supreme, almighty God-to reproduce himself! The following chapter will make this undeniably clear. One last important comment before ending this chapter. Gods supreme overall purpose is to create, even to the extent of reproducing himself, and also that God must reign supreme over all his creation. Apparently God has chosen this earth to become his universe headquarters, and the seat of even the supreme throne of God. (See I Corinthians 15:24.) But Satan had overthrown the government of God on the earth. Now God purposed to restore his government over the earth through man, created in the image of God and finally t o become part of the God family. We should heed Pauls admonition not to be ignorant of Satans existence, or of his devices, nor let him get an advantage of us (I1 Cor. 2 : l l ) . Our supremely important purpose will be made clear in following chapters.
Good News
You have heard the saying about good news and bad news. The latter part of this chapter has given you the bad news. The good news is Gods purpose through mankind and the fact that the two thirds of the angels who are holy and righteous outnumber the demons and remain as Gods invisible agents t o minister t o and help in the righteous character development of the myriad of humans who shall yet become the sons and heirs of the Supreme God and members of the great God family.
95
96
immortal soul within him? Just what IS a human person, after all? And WHY? Why is mankind here on the earth? Did we simply happen? Or was there DESIGN and PURPOSE? We say there is a CAUSE for every effect. The effect, here, is man. Man is here. HOW-WHY he come to be did here? Was he p u t here, or did he just happen by blind, senseless, unintelligent processes of evolution? We ought to want to know! This is a mystery that has baffled higher education. Higher education during the twentieth century has come, with virtual unanimity, to accept the evolutionary theory. It no longer even considers the possibility of a designed and planned creation by a God of supreme mind, perfect intelligence, and limitless power. But the evolutionary theory cannot in any degree explain a paradoxical world of awesome accomplishment that is at the same time utterly helpless to solve its problems of mounting and continually escalating evils. It can give no purpose for human existence. Higher education contemptuously ignores, without any consideration whatsoever, the biblical truths revealing mans presence on the earth and the causes of the present state of civilization. Education in the civilized world today has become entirely materialistic. Education has become a combination of the agnosticism of evolution, the politics and economics of Karl Marx and the morals and social patterns of Sigmund Freud. Higher education remains in utter ignorance of the mystery of mankind and of human civilization. But higher education does not know. And it doesnt want to know! When we invade the questions of WHAT and WHY, the intellectuals-the custodians of KNOWLEDGE97
shy away or stand up and fight. Of the questions WHAT and WHY is man, they are willingly ignorant! So, education shuts its mind, and its mouth in tight silence. Science doesnt know. Religion does not reveal, for it also doesnt know! Yes, incredible-but TRUE!
4 &?,I, r : +-
-&
questions of WHO and WHAT is GOD.And we find God is quite REAL. God is more than one single person-God is a family-God is the supreme divine family-he is the Creator of all that is, and he has an ultimate PURPOSE-the creation of perfect, holy, righteous and spiritual CHARACTER, in MAN made immortal, to become part of that God family. So the presence of MAN on the earth must have a definite relation t o the PURPOSE of GODthe Creator. With these basically important questions and statements we must ask, WHY all the evils in todays sick and chaotic world? This world now faces, with no solution, its number one problem-the question of HUMAN SURVIVAL! Can human life on earth survive even through the short remainder of this twentieth century? Can humanity survive both the population explosion and the nuclear power his mind has produced that can annihilate that entire population? Consider now what has been covered about Gods PURPOSE for the angels that sinned on earth. For that angelic rebellion leads directly to Gods PURPOSE for MAN-tO our question O WHAT and WHY iS MAN? f
oceanic surface-and light had been by angelic lawlessness turned into darkness. Let me here interject a biblical principle within the immediate context. There is this instruction in Isaiah Whom shall he teach knowledge? and whom shall he make to understand doctrine? . . . precept must be upon precept, precept upon precept; line upon line, line upon line; here a little, and there a little (Isa. 28:9-10). But most who try to apply this principle in biblical understanding take each little verse out of its context, to interpret their own ideas into it. The Holy Bible is unique among all books ever written. The very fact that its truths are revealed here a little, there a little means it is a coded book, not to be understood until our present time of the end as explained elsewhere in this volume. Those who have tried to read the Bible directly and continuously from the beginning have been bewildered. Many have simply thrown up their hands and said, as I myself did once, I just cant understand the Bible. That is why Bruce Barton said the Bible is the book nobody knows. As I have explained elsewhere the Bible is like a jigsaw puzzle. Until the various pieces of a jigsaw puzzle are put properly together, the true picture does not emerge. Much, directly concerned with what is in Genesis 1, is filled in by other passages of Scripture in other parts of the Bible. So now, lets UNDERSTAND the background. Genesis 1:l: God created the heavens and the earth. We have already seen, in chapter 2, that the heavens (or the universe) and the earth were created after the angels. Earths angels had not completed the creation of the earth by improvement, development and beautification. Rather, they had brought it to desolation and ruin. The GOVERNMENT OF GODhad been nullified on earth.
100
And now, of all living beings in the universe, ONLY GODcould be certainly relied upon never to depart from the way of his law. No higher, more perfect being could be created than the cherub, Lucifer, who rebelled. Character cannot be automatically created by fiat. Godly spiritual character i s the habitual action and conduct of the person or created entity to come to a knowledge of the true ways of God, and to exercise the will to follow those ways even against opposition, temptation or self-desire to the contrary. Character must be developed with the assent, will and action of the separately created entity. It is imparted by God and must be willingly received by that entity. So God now determined, or had predetermined, t o accomplish the SUPREME creative feat-by reproducing himself! That was to be accomplished through MAN! God knew this must be brought about through MATTER.
in the water, the animal life. In the Hebrew in which Moses wrote, the vertebrates are called nephesh in verses 20, 21, 24. The translators correctly rendered nephesh in these three verses into the English words living creatures. Yet in Genesis 2:7, speaking of man, the same word nephesh was translated soul because the translators falsely thought t h a t only humans are souls. T h g word nephesh literally means life of animals, referring to physical life and not spirit. . . . _ Once again the earth was a perfect, but as yet unfinished, creation-lacking the finishing touches. As was written earlier, God creates in dual stages. This might be compared to baking a cake. First the basic cake comes from the oven. But it is not complete until the second stage is added-the icing on the cake. This beautifies, enriches and completes the cake. God placed Lucifer and his angels on the earth. But he intended them to complete the creation by putting on, as it were, the finishing touches to beautify, improve and enrich the earth. But the angels sinned, resulting in bringing chaos, confusion and darkness to this planet. Now God renewed the face of the earth for MAN, made to become in the character image of God and also in the likeness or form and shape of God. And God intended man to complete the finishing touches by improving and beautifying the earth-putting, as it were, the icing on the cake, to have mans part in the final creation of the earth. Instead, man has ruined, polluted, defiled, deteriorated almost every portion of the earth his hands have touched or acted upon.
The Mystery of M a n
himself-of recreating himself, as it were, by the supreme objective of creating the righteous divine character ultimately in millions unnumbered begotten and born children who shall become God beings, members of the God family. Man was to improve the physical earth as God gave it to him, finishing its creation (which sinning angels had deliberately refused to do) and, in so doing, to RESTORE the GOVERNMENT OF GOD, with Gods WAY of life; and further, in this very process FINISHING THE CREATION OF MAN by the development of Gods holy, righteous CHARACTER, mans own assent. with Once this perfect and righteous character is instilled in man, and man converted from mortal flesh to immortal spirit, then is to come the INCREDIBLE HUMAN POTENTIAL-man being BORN INTO the divine FAMILY O f God, restoring the government of God to the earth, and then participating in the completion of the CREATION over the entire endless expanse of the UNIVERSE! That incredible potential of man will be fully explained in the pages that follow in this volume. God shall have reproduced HIMSELF untold millions of times over! So, on the sixth day of that re-creation week, God (Elohim) said, Let us make man in our image, after our likeness (Gen. 1:26). Lyb:j&= Man was made to have (with his assent) a special relationship with his Maker! He was made in the form and shape of God. He was given a spirit (essence in form) to make the relationship possible. Much more of that a little later.
ground, and breathed into his nostrils the breath [air] of life; and man became a living soul (Gen. 2:7). Man, formed from material dust of t h e ground, upon breathing air, BECAME a living soul. It does not say man is, or has, an immortal soul. What was formed from material ground BECAME a soul. The word ~ 0 ~ is 1 translated from the Hebrew in which Moses wrote, from the word nephesh. T h e Hebrew nephesh merely means a breathing animal. Three times in the first chapter of Genesis animals are called nephesh: Gen. 1:20, moving creature (Hebrew, nephesh); Gen. 1:21, great whales, and every living creature (Hebrew, nephesh); Gen. 1:24, living creature (Hebrew, nephesh). The translators in translating into the English language used the English word creature, but in Genesis 2:7 they translated the same nephesh into the English word soul-man became a living soul (nephesh). Therefore the SOUL is physical, composed of matter, and can die. This is a TRUTH believed by very few denominations, and probably by no other religionsanother PROOF that identifies the one true Church of God!
almost as large. Yet the output of the human brain is indescribably greater. Few indeed know WHY! Many passages of Scripture show that there is a spirit in man. Spirit is not matter, and man is matter. - -- To distinguish it from Gods Holy Spirit, I designate it as the human.spjrit. Nevertheless, it is spirit and not matter. This human spirit imparts the power of intellect to the human physical brain. The spirit cannot see, hear, taste, smell or feel. The brain sees through the eye, hears through the ear, etc. The human spirit cannot of itself think. The physical brain thinks. What, then, is the function of this human spirit? It is NOT a soul. But, 1) it imparts the power of intellect-of thinking, and of MIND power, to the human brain; and 2) it is the very means God has instilled, making possible a personal relationship between human MAN and divine G O D .
&d b
Philosophers, humanists, speak loftily of human worth as of supreme value in itself. They speak of the god within you-of tapping the innate hidden resources within yourself. They teach SELF-reliance, self-glorification. They are smugly ignorant and unaware of the TRUE VALUES and the incredible but real human potential. Human life is at once of infinitesimally less value than they suppose, and at the same time of supremely greater potential than they know. Real truth is revealed. Unless revealed it remains a mystery, utterly unknown to the deceived and vain intellectuals. I repeat, Jesus said in prayer: I thank thee, 0 Father, Lord of heaven and earth, because thou hast hid these things from the wise and prudent, and revealed them unto babes (Matt. 11:25).
105
What is the real truth concerning human worth? What is the real value of a human life? It is grossly overestimated in its own reality, and astoundingly undervalued in its supreme potential. The truth indeed is staggering. You look upon a sweet, innocent babe a few hours old, or upon a life-fulfilled elderly person of 80 and ask yourself, Just how valuable is that life?-one just beginning, the other already spent. Could you supply the correct answer? Lets UNDERSTAND! Right here is the point of difficulty. Right here is the jumping off point where the worlds educated jump the track. Science and advanced education today almost universally assume nothing exists but matter. They deny the existence of spirit. Which is to say, whether admitted or not, they deny the existence of God. We come to the modern science of brain research. We learn t h a t t h e human brain exercises many functions impossible in animal brain, yet we learn there is virtually no significant difference, physically. The animal cannot think, reason, study, make decisions apart from instinct. I t cannot know what the human knows. It does not have attitudes of judgment, wisdom, love, kindness, cooperation, nor is it aware of competition, conspiracy, envy, jealousy, resentment. It has no appreciation of music, art and literature. It has no spiritual qualities or characteristics. Yet science and higher education insist the faculty of intellect in humans is solely physical, I had to PROVE to myself rationally that God exists and is in fact more REAL than matter. I had to PROVE that the Holy Bible is in fact the authoritative word of God, by which he communicates t o man, reveals truth otherwise inaccessible to man. And I found revealed
106
PURPOSE, DESIGN, MEANING that is hidden from the self-professed scholarly. I found revealed the reason for mounting evils in a progressive world. Can the human, who has been designed, created and made, say to his Maker, WHYdid you make me thus?-and for what PURPOSE? can he instruct his And Maker? Should he not, rather, open his mind, and listen when his Maker reveals to him the very reason for his being? The Creator reveals and instructs in a highly coded book, the Holy Bible. Its profound message is opened to human understanding through the presence and in-dwelling of the Holy Spirit injected into the human mind that has surrendered and yielded completely to the revelation in belief and obedience. To such a one the TRUTH is made plain-wonderful beyond description. But mark well this question! Think on this! If man had only the physical brain, like the dumb vertebrates, how could the great Spirit God inject into the animal brain these marvelous spiritual truths? The answer is plain. God does not. The dumb animals have no awareness of God or of spiritual knowledge. But the human spirit in mortal man makes possible a direct contact from the great Spirit God. There is no direct channel of communication between the dumb animal brain and the mind of the Supreme God. Meditate on this. We humans sometimes speak of how wonderfully God made man, with his brain and the marvelous physical components of his body all functioning together. But without this spirit, imparting the power of intellect to the brain and also opening a channel of direct communication with the mind of the Great God, man would be no more than the dumb brutes. But with the spirit in man, mans creation becomes all the more awesome to contemplate. It is this
107
human spirit in man that makes it possible for man to be united with God, so that man may be begotten of God by Gods Spirit uniting with the human spirit, thus impregnating the human person as a child of the Supreme Creator God. The real value of a human life, then, lies solely within the human spirit combined with the human brain. It should be stated a t once that this human spirit is not perceived by the most highly educated psychologists, yet it is the very essence of the human MIND.
108
It may seem shockingly strange, because it is a dimension in knowledge hitherto untaught, but the real value of a human life lies solely in the human spirit, as it works in combination with the human brain. God formed man of matter, but after his own image and likeness as to form and shape. But the brute animal and man have the same breath, the same source of life. They die the same death. Human life is animal existence, but in the form and shape of God, and with the human spirit added to the brain. Man was created to have a relationship with his Maker. Therefore he was made in his Makers form and shape, with contact and relationship made possible by the presence within him of the human spirit. I F _ _ -
MYSTERYOFTHEAGES
this is being written, is probably the most controversial question a t issue among the Western worlds population-the question of abortion. The human spirit enters the human embryo at - conception. It is this spirit that may, u p o n adult conversion, be united with the Holy Spirit from the great Creator God, impregnating that human with God-life as a child of the living God, in a state of gestation, though as yet unborn. ,TLd-estrov an embTyo ora_fe&..n. a-mothers uterus is to MURDER-% potential futurgGod-Being. T-&eb-e,-a_bortion is murder. Now back to our original question: What is the only real value of a human life? Human life is animal existence but with human spirit empowering the brain with intellect. The human spirit in man makes possible the union with the Holy Spirit and mind and immortality of God. When mortal man dies, the body reverts to dust, and the spirit returns to God.
They speak of the innate god powers within each human. They advocate SELF-confidence, self-glorification. They make mortal man t o think of himself as immortal God. Much to the contrary, the sole value of human life lies in the human spirit and the potential of being begotten of God, later to be born VERY GOD,a child in the GODFAMILY. Man is not god within himself, but only mortal flesh and blood with a brain empowered with intellect by the human spirit. Therefore, man of himself is infinitesimally of less value than the self-professed wise of this world suppose. But, once begotten by the Supreme God through the very LIFE and Spirit of the living God dwelling in him, a human beings potential is of infinitely greater value than the world has understood. God creates, as previously explained, by t h e principle of DUALITY. So it is with the creation of MAN. It is accomplished in TWO STAGES: 1) the physical phase, which began with the first man, Adam; and 2) the spiritual state, which begins with the second Adam Jesus Christ (I Cor. 15:45-46). So also, man was made from his creation (and birth) with the one human spirit that became an integral part of man. But he is mentally and spiritually INCOMPLETE; was made to need another Spirit-the he of HOLYSPIRIT God-and when that gift of God is received, Gods Spirit itself beareth witness with our spirit, that we are the children of God (Rom. 8:16)-in t h e begotten (or first stage) of mans spiritual creation. This is most clearly explained in I Corinthians 2. . . . Eye hath not seen, nor ear heard, neither have entered into the heart [mind] of man, the things which
111
God hath prepared for them that love him (verse 9)-spiritual knowledge. T h e natural mind can receive knowledge of material and physical things. Also it can have a sense of morality, ethics, art, culture not possessed by the dumb animals. But in the realm of good and evil it can know and perform what is good only on the human level, made possible by the human spirit within man. But this sense and performance of good is limited to the human level of the human spirit that is innately selfish. It can possess and express love on the human level, but without the Holy Spirit of God it cannot possess or express love on the God level, nor can it acquire knowledge of that which is spiritual, as revealed in I Corinthians 2.
ONLYwhen the Holy Spirit enters, combining with t h e human spirit, can a m a n come t o really comprehend that which is spiritual-But the natural man receiveth not the things of the Spirit of God: for they are foolishness unto him: neither can he know them, because they are spiritually discerned (verse 14). The most highly educated view all things through the eyeglasses of evolutionary theory. Evolution is concerned solely with material life and development. It knows and teaches nothing about spiritual life and problems, and all the evils in the world are spiritual in nature. That is WHY the most highly educated are, overall, the most ignorant-they are confined to knowledge of the material, and t o good on the self-centered level. Knowledge of God and the things of God are foolishness to them. But, of course, God says, The wisdom of this world is foolishness with God (I Cor. 3:19).
World Cut Off from God Now back to the first human, Adam. Remember Gods PURPOSE in creating man on the earth: 1) t o restore the GOVERNMENT OF GOD on earth, and by regulating human life through that GOVERNMENT, a) complete the physical creation of earth where angels turned it to ruin, and b) in the process complete the creation of MAN by developing righteous spiritual CHARACTER; and 2) to establish the KINGDOM OF GOD, and eventually the incredible human potential of finishing the creation of the vast UNIVERSE! This supreme PURPOSE required: 1)that MAN reject Satans WAY, embracing GODSWAY of LOVE, based on Gods spiritual law; and 2) that man be made first of matter so that, if he was led into Satans way of GET,
113
he could be CHANGED, converted to GODS WAY of LOVE, or if he refused to change, his life would be blotted out without further or continuous suffering just as if he had never been. Spirit beings, once a finished creation (as were the one third of the angels who became evil characters), could not be changed! Spirit, once its creation is completed, is constant and eternal-not subject t o change. But physical matter is constantly changing. Through Gods master plan for his spiritual creation, to be covered later, it had been master-planned by God and the Word that the Word would divest himself of his supreme glory, and in due time take on him the likeness of human flesh, as Jesus Christ, making possible the spiritual phase of the creation of MAN-God REPRODUCING HIMSELF! What a MASTER PLAN for the extreme ULTIMATE in creative accomplishment! How GREAT is our God, in mind, purpose, planning, designing, as well as CREATmG-from the tiniest germ or insect to the most huge sun, dwarfing our own great sun to insignificance! And the incredible human potential is that the GREAT MAJESTIC G O D is, in- MA-.,reproducing-himselfman can be born inG-t;%GoD FAMILY! The first human, Adam, was created with the potential of qualifying to replace Satan, the former Lucifer, on earths throne, restoring the GOVERNMENT OF GOD. But it was necessary that he resist, and reject Satans GET way, which was the foundation of Satans WAY of his law-the evil government, and choose GODS way of LOVE (GIVE), basis of Gods government! the His Maker talked first t o Adam and Eveinstructed them in the GOVERNMENT and spiritual LAW of God-though in Genesis 2 only the most condensed
114
summary of Gods instruction t o them is revealed. Satan was restrained from any contact with them until God first had taught them.
and performed an operation, removing a rib and forming a woman from it. They became one family. The physical creation of man was completed. They could reproduce their kind. But the man God created was mortal. He had only a temporary physicochemical existence kept alive by circulation of blood, oxidized by the breath of air, and fueled by food and water from the ground. He did not have LIFE inherent-self-containing life. But he did have a human spirit that, united with Gods Holy Spirit, could beget him with eternal life.
116
He would have received the Holy Spirit of God to unite with his human spirit. The man was not mentally or spiritually complete until receiving the Spirit of God. This would have united him, mentally and spiritually, with God. He would have been begotten as a child of God, just as is the converted Spirit-begotten Christian. He would have received the Holy Spirit of God to join with his human spirit, begetting him as a son of God, imparting t o him the earnest of immortal life, and making him a t one with God. As in the case of the Spirit-begotten Christian today, where Christ in [us is] the hope of glory (Col. 1:27). And again, the mind of Christ is in us (Phil. 2:5), so the very mind of the Eternal would have been in Adam. But instead the mind and attitude of Satan entered into him and worked in him, even as it has in all his children that have composed this whole world. We read in Ephesians 2:2, that Satan, as prince of the power of the air, does indeed actually work within humans. At this juncture, we explain a point that might be misunderstood. In the temptation by Satan, Eve was deceived, but Adam was not (I Tim. 213-14). Adam disobeyed God and sinned deliberately. But even though he was not deceived in this original temptation, his deliberate disobedience of Gods explicit command cut him off from God, producing a state of mental perversion and opening his mind to the deceptions of Satan. From that moment, Adam and all his children after him were receptive to the sway of Satan. Satan began to work in the mind of Adam, even as God would have worked in his mind had he taken of the tree of life. A World Held Captive T h u s , from t h a t moment, S a t a n had spiritually
117
kidnapped Adam, and all his human family has ever since been held captive by Satan. God would have revealed to Adam Gods way of life-which is Gods spiritual law. That law is the way of outflowing love-but it would have been the love of God.. . shed abroad in [human] hearts by the Holy [Spirit] (Rom. 5:5). Human natural carnal love cannot fulfill Gods holy law. But, even as a human embryo has been begotten by human parents, and just as the embryo must develop through the process of gestation before being born, so is the Spirit-led Christian, and so would have been Adam. But he would have experienced a direct connection and contact with God. I like t o compare this t o the umbilical cord connecting the newborn baby with its mother. Its human life and physical nourishment has been supplied during gestation from the mother to the child. Gods Spirit LIFE is imparted to the Christian through the Holy Spirit. Also, spiritual knowledge is imparted by God but through the indwelling of the Holy Spirit (I Cor. 2:lO). Full comprehension of Gods LAW (his way of life) is imparted by God through the Holy Spirit. But the law of God requires action and performance, and LOVE is the fulfilling of Gods law (Rom. 13:10), and it can be fulfilled only by the love of and from God (Rorn. 5:5). So Adam would have had the in-depth spiritual knowledge to live Gods way, and also would have been supplied with the divine love that, only, can fulfill that perfect law of love and put it into action. He would also have received by the Spirit of God the very FAITH of God. He would have received knowledge, guidance and help from God. He would have had reliance on God to intervene in matters beyond his control. In such matters God supernaturally does for us what we are
118
The Mystery
of
Man
unable to do for ourselves. In other words, God fights our battles for us.
Rejecting Gods L aw and Government But instead Adam chose a different kind of knowledgehe took TO HIMSELF the knowledge of good as well as evil. He relied wholly on himself-both for the KNOWLEDGE as well as power of performance of good as well as evil. He REJECTED reliance on God and chose the course of SELF-reliance. The only righteousness he could acquire was SELF-righteousness,which to God is like filthy rags. Adam and Eve took of the tree of the knowledge of good and evil. Taking of its fruit was taking t o themselves the knowledge of what is good, and what is evil-deciding for themselves what is right and what is sin. This, of course, meant rejection of GODS LAW, which defined for t h e m the right and the wrong. The glorious archangel Lucifer, as God originally created him, was the pinnacle of Gods creative power in a single being. Few today remotely realize the great power, now turned to cunning deception, possessed by Satan. Apparently Adam completely underestimated him. The wily Satan got to Adam through his wife Eve. He did not say, CHOOSE WAY! He appeared as a MY subtile serpent. He cleverly deceived her. He put DOUBTS in her mind about Gods veracity. He put a sense of injustice and resentment within her. H e deceived her into believing God had been unfair-selfish. He subtilely injected vanity of mind. He misled her into thinking it was right to take of the forbidden fruit. Adam, not deceived, nevertheless went along with his wife. With her, he took to himself the determination of what is right and what is wrong-thus DISBELIEVING what his Maker had said, REJECTING God as Savior and
119
Ruler-rejecting God as the source of revealed BASIC KNOWLEDGE. He believed and followed Satans WAY!
God said, in effect: You have made the decision for yourself and the world that shall spring from you. You have rejected me as the basic source of knowledge-you have rejected power from me through my Spirit to live the righteous way-you have rebelled against my command and my government-you have chosen the TAKING way of Satan. Therefore I sentence GETTING, you and the world you shall beget to 6,000 years of being cut off from access to me and my Spirit-except for the exceedingly FEW I shall specially call. And that FEW shall be called for special service preparatory for the kingdom of God. They shall be required to do what you have failed to do-reject, resist and overcome Satan and his WAYS, and follow the ways of my spiritual LAW. Go, therefore, Adam, and all your progeny that shall form the world, produce your own fund of knowledge. Decide for yourself what is good and what is evil. Produce your own educational systems and means of disseminating knowledge, as your god Satan shall mislead you. Form your own concepts of what is god, your own religions, your own governments, your own life-styles and forms of society and civilization. In all this Satan will deceive your world with his attitude of SELF-centeredness-with vanity, lust and greed, jealousy and envy, competition and strife and violence and wars, rebellion against me and my law of LOVE. After the world of your descendants has written
120
the lesson in 6,000 years of human suffering, anguish, frustration, defeat and death-after the world that shall spring from you shall have been brought t o confess the utter hopelessness of the way of life you have chosen-I will supernaturally intervene. By supernatural divine power I shall then take over the government of the whole world. With reeducation, I will produce a happy world of PEACE. And on repentance, I shall then offer eternal salvation t o all. After a thousand years of that happy world to come, I will resurrect from death t o mortal life all who have died uncalled during this present 6,000 years. Their judgment shall then come. And on repentance and faith, eternal life shall be offered them. During this 6,000 years, when I myself shall cut them off from me, they shall not be eternally judged. Only, as they sow during their lifetimes, they shall reap. But when I open eternal salvation to them, there shall be no Satan t o hinder or deceive them-no Satan for them to overcome. Those few called during this first 6,000 years shall have to reject and resist Satans pulls and overcome. But those who overcome shall sit with me in my throne, and have power under me to rule all nations under my Supreme Rule.
Origin of Self-Reliance
What does all this mean? Adam the first human rejected knowledge from and reliance on God. He chose to rely on his own knowledge and abilities. The modern world, developed-from Adam, relies wholly on human self-reliance. The psychology taught in our day is self-reliance. Rely on the innate powers within you, they teach. An atmosphere of self-reliant professionalism pervades most modern university campuses. It is
121
MYSTERY
OF THE AGES
the spirit of vanity. The university student is induced to think of himself as becoming a professional-that is, he considers himself elevated above those who have not had his brand of education. Through the basic concept of the evolutionary theory, he feels himself completely above those who believe in God and the Lord Jesus Christ. He regards them with disdain.
The Mystery of M a n
years, until the second Adam, Jesus Christ, after 6,000 years should return to earth in supreme power and glory to unseat Satan from his throne and to rule all nations of mankind. T h e f i r s t man Adam h a d been given t h e opportunity to choose Gods government, to restore that government to the earth, and to unseat Satan from the throne of the earth. Since he failed, salvation cannot be opened to humanity generally, until Jesus Christ, the second Adam, has accomplished what the first Adam failed to do-namely, to unseat Satan and to sit on the throne of the earth, restoring the government of God to this earth. The closing of the tree of life from the human family marked the foundation of the present world still ruled invisibly by Satan. How, then, was God going to accomplish his purpose? At that very foundation of this world it was determined by God that the Word would be born on earth as the sacrificial lamb of God to redeem mankind from the rule of Satan the kidnapper (Rev. 13%). But how, then, was God ever t o accomplish his purpose of reproducing himself through the humans to be born during that next 6,000 years?
A t that very foundation of Satans world it was also decreed (Heb. 927) that God had appointed that all humans should die once, and after that, by resurrection from the dead, would come the judgment. Meanwhile mankind as a whole would not as yet be brought to judgment-neither condemned nor saved. It was a t that time decided that as in Adam all humans should die, so in Christ the same all should be brought back to life by a resurrection to judgment (I Cor. 15:22). This very
123
resurrection of all who died in Adam has been a mystery to the whole world deceived by Satan. Even today traditional Christianity celebrates the resurrection of Jesus on the pagan Easter every spring, but says nothing about the future resurrection of the billions who have died in Adam. That resurrection will be explained later in this volume. Meanwhile, when Christ should come as humanitys sinbearer, he would found the Church of God. The purpose and function of the Church will be fully covered in Chapter 6 of this book. Pause right here! Understand what Satan has blinded the entire world from seeing. Realize what a deceived traditional Christianity has not understood. This is of supreme importance! The world of traditional Christianity has been deceived into supposed Christian teaching of the immortality of the soul, of those who profess Jesus going immediately upon death into a heaven of eternal idleness, freedom from responsibility and bliss in ease and laziness; in those who fail to accept Jesus going a t death to a definite place of eternal continuous burning fire called hell where they shriek and scream in indescribable pain and agony forever and ever without hope. The teaching has been that man is an immortal soul and already has eternal life. It denies (Rom. 6:23) that the penalty for sin is death and that man can have eternal life only as the gift of God. The false traditional Christianity teaching might be compared to taking a one-way railroad trip. This trip is your lifes journey. At the end of the line a switch is automatically set that will send you straight t o a lasting burning hell of indescribable pain and torture. But if, a t any time during lifes journey, you profess to accept Christ, the
124
switch a t the end of the line, at that point, is turned t o shoot you straight to heaven. Much supposed Christian teaching has been that God created the first man a perfect immortal being, but that when God was not looking Satan stole in and wrecked this wonderful handiwork of God. Salvation is then pictured as Gods effort to repair the damage, and to restore mankind back to a condition as good as when God first created him. In doctrine after doctrine they have believed and taught the diametric opposite of the truths plainly revealed in the Bible.
The Bibles message is clear on this point. Death is death beyond any shadow of doubt. The apostle Paul wrote that the wages of sin is death (Rom. 6:23). Death, by definition, is the absence of life-not just separation from God. Scripture even warns us to make the most of life now while we have the opportunity: Whatever your hand finds to do, do it with your might; for there is no work or device or knowledge or wisdom in the grave where you are going (Eccl. 9:10, Revised Authorized Version). It couldnt be more plain. But what about those who want to cling to the cherished belief in floating off to heaven after death if good, or sinking to hell if bad? Listen to the apostle Peters response. If anyone deserved t o go t o heaven, i t would certainly be someone after Gods own heart, wouldnt it? David was such a person (Acts 13:22). But Peter was inspired by God to say, David is both dead and buried, and his tomb is with us t o this day (Acts 2:29, RAV), and further, David did not ascend into the heavens (Acts 2:34). Jesus himself also said that no man hath ascended up to heaven, where Gods throne is (John 3:13).
Even though when we die we are dead, we will not remain dead forever. The dead in their graves will live again! Read what Jesus says: DO not marvel at this; for the hour is coming in which all who are in the graves will hear His voice and come forth-those who have done good, to the resurrection of life, and those who have done evil, to the resurrection of Ljudgment] (John
5:28-29, RAV).
There is an accounting for our behavior in this life! Every human being who has ever lived will ultimately give an accounting and be in a resurrection. I have explained earlier that the spirit in man of itself does not see, cannot hear, cannot think. The brain sees through the eye, hears through the ear, and thinks as it is empowered by the spirit. At death, Then shall the dust return to the earth as it was: and the spirit shall return unto God who gave it (Eccl. 12:7). The spirit is the depository of memory and character. The spirit is like a mold. It retains even the human form and shape of the deceased, so that in the resurrection to judgment those who have died shall look as they did in life, retain whatever character they established in life, remember everything that was stored in their memory. But in the meantime, in death, there is no consciousness-they know not any thing (Eccl. 9:5). The most universal false teaching, believed by virtually all churches called Christianity, except the one and only true and original Church of God, is that ALL are automatically lost unless they profess Jesus Christ as Savior-and that now is the only day of salvation. But the truth is that those cut off from God are NOT
YET JUDGED!
Few
UNDERSTAND
The reader cannot possibly be more surprised at the truth revealed in this volume than was the author, more than 58 years ago. The WHOLE WORLD has been deceived, as Gods Word foretold! One deceived is not aware of the deception! Dont underestimate Satan!
of God the Father, and also of Jesus being God, they came up with the false theory of the Holy Spirit being a Ghost, or third Person of a Trinity, thus blaspheming the Holy Spirit and LIMITING God and doing away with all knowledge that converted humans can become members of the very divine God FAMILY. Thus Satan blinded Christianity from the truth and purpose of the gospel of Jesus Christ. They have overlooked a most important t r u t h the resurrection from the dead. They celebrate a pagan Easter acknowledging the resurrection of Jesus Christ from the dead. But they overlook entirely the plain biblical teaching that all who ever lived are to be resurrected from the dead, although in the time order of three distinctly different resurrections. The only hope the Holy Bible gives for the vast humanity of this dying world is the hope of a resurrection from the dead, but that is a positively sure hope. All this will be completely covered and the full scriptures given in the chapters to follow. What a tragedy that, as plainly stated in Revelation 12:9, this whole world has been deceived and blinded from the truth by Satan the devil, still sitting on the throne of the entire earth. The real truth is startling, but you will find it plainly revealed in your own Bible. Follow it as you carefully read this book. Consider! When God drove Adam and Eve out from the Garden of Eden, He set angels to bar mankind from reentering. Suppose the Eternal had left the gate into Eden open. Man had already taken of the forbidden tree. Man had already turned to sin. What would have happened? Probably the whole of sinning mankind would have surged back in to take of that tree of LIFE! Without any repentance-without even FAITH in God or
129
God N o t
Unrair
How uNfair would God have been, had he allowed that! Man, with all his sins-and sin has a habit of increasing in the one who indulges in it-would have become immortal -living forever while sufferingthe pains, mental, physical and spiritual, that sin would bring on him! Man does not seem to realize that he now is the SLAVE of sin. Sin has cut him off from God the Father. Few understand that we are not saved by the death of Christ. We are reconciled t o God the Father by Jesus death. We are saved by his life (Rom. 5:lO). Man does not realize that only a real repentance-turning from sin-and the living FAITH of Jesus Christ can FREE him from that penalty! Sin enslaves! It punishes! It brings sorrow, remorse, anguish. It inflicts physical injury, sickness and disease. I t produces frustration and hopelessness. The most unfair, UNkind, cruel thing God could have done once Adam and Eve had taken the forbidden tree would have been to leave the way open into the garden, with free access to all comers to the tree of LIFE-SymbOlk O the gift Of ETERNAL LIFE! f But what did God do? He drove out the man and the woman. He barred reentrance. He, however, made salvation and eternal life in extreme happiness and bliss become available to ALL the human family. But, with godly wisdom, he set a time-order and conditions! For the first 6,000 yearsnow almost completed-all but the predestined FEW were cut off. On this point the entire world of traditional
130
The Mystery
of
Man
Christianity has been deceived. Here is a most important t r u t h Satan sitting on earths throne tried to kill the Christ child. He then tried to tempt and disqualify Jesus just before the Christ started his ) earthly ministry (Matt. 4 .Satan caused the martyrdom of most of the apostles. He caused intensive persecution against the Church. He caused a violent controversy to flare up in the early months and years of the Church disputing whether the gospel to be proclaimed was the gospel OF Christ, or mans gospel ABOUT Christ. Satan caused the latter to win out, and in less than 20 years a false and counterfeit gospel ABOUT Christ was being proclaimed by all but the persecuted FEW who loyally remained as the small and persecuted true original Church of God.
very purpose of being part of the foundation of the Church. Jesus called disciples OUT OF THIS WORLD to be taught to teach others and in the coming millennium of the restored kingdom of God, to rule and teach under King of kings Jesus, when the tree of life will be opened to all flesh. The Church was called to be trained to become rulers and teachers in the kingdom of God WHEN the tree of life shall be opened. Meanwhile the Holy Spirit has been closed to all but the prophets and the calledout-ones of the true Church. The prophet Joel foretold it shall come t o pass afterward-after the 6,000 years of this world of Satan, that God will pour out of his Spirit upon all flesh (Joel 2:28). Meanwhile it was necessary for Gods purpose that the Holy Spirit be given to the DroDhets and those specially called out f teachers under Chris1 restored to the earth In calling out the Church, Jesus said plainly, N o man can come to me, except the Father which hath sent me draw him. . . (John 6:44). The Church is merely the first-fruits of salvation. This entire truth will be made more clear in Chapter 6.
W h y the Second Adam?
To review: Approximately 4,000 years from Adam, God sent Jesus Christ to live a perfect life, overcoming Satan, qualifying where the first Adam failed, to replace Satan as RULER on the throne of the whole earth. Those who, as Jesus did, overcome Satan, their own selves and sin (the called, that is), will sit with Christ in his throne when he comes to set up THE KINGDOM OF GODand t o restore the GOVERNMENT OF GOD, which the former Lucifer rejected and ceased to administer!
132
Those very few called, beginning with righteous Abel up to now and on to Christs return to earth, have had to do what Adam refused to do-REJECT THE WAY OF SATAN, rebelled against the GOVERNMENT OF GOD! who Who, then, is a real Christian? Only those who have been, and are being, led by the Holy Spirit of God (Rom. 89, 11, 14). And none can receive the Holy Spirit until that person 1)REPENTS-of his sins, his transgressions of Gods law; and 2) has complete faith in Jesus Christ-relying on Christ-which includes BELIEVING Jesus Christ. I mean, believing what he says-his WORD, the Holy Bible! Thus, the called-out-ones after real repentance and belief Christ reconciles to God the Father and we receive the Holy Spirit impregnating us as children of God. At this point let us clear up another question. Why could not Cain, Abel and Seth, the firstborn children of Adam, have repented and purely on that repentance have received the Spirit and life of God? Godslaw could not be a law except there be a penalty for its infraction. Adam had sinned. All his children had sinned and incurred on them the death penalty. They and no person after them could be freed from the penalty of that law until Christ, their very Maker, had paid that death penalty in their stead. Therefore, no salvation was possible until the crucifixion of Christ. Only Jesus atonement could reconcile any human to God the Father. Now, what of these and all the others-the THOUSANDS OF MILLIONS? to now, unless called and Up drawn by God, they simply have not yet been judged! I do not mean they shall not have to give account for their sins. They shall, indeed! But their judgment is COMING. Judgment has begun in the true Church of God (I Pet. 417). Jesus said, No man can come to me, except the Father. ..draw h i m . . . (John 6:44). No MAN CAN 133
come to Christ otherwise! But the Church is merely the FIRST harvest. In Satans deceived world many have come to a counterfeit Christ who is supposed to have done away with his Fathers commandments. They even worship Christ. But Jesus himself said plainly: Howbeit in vain do they worship me, teaching for doctrines t h e commandments of men. . . .And he said unto them, Full well ye reject the commandment of God, that ye may keep your own tradition. . . . Making the word of God of none effect through your tradition, which ye have delivered: and many such like things do ye (Mark 7:7, 9, 13). Deceived millions do not realize that they are worshiping Christ in vain. They have been deceived into worshiping another Jesus.
Adam all die, even so in Christ shall all be made alive. But every man in his own order: Christ the firstfruits; afterward. . . (two other resurrections revealed in Revelation 2011-13 are not covered in I Corinthians 15). Those called in the millennium, and those in the Great White Throne resurrection and judgment, shall NOT have Satan, then, to overcome. How WONDERFUL are Gods ways-even though hidden now from most of humanity bringing so much suffering on themselves! As the apostle Paul exclaimed: 0 the depth of the riches both of the wisdom and knowledge of God! how unsearchable are his judgments, and his ways past finding out! (Rom. 11:33). In MAN, God is reproducing himself! The word for God in Genesis 1:l is Elohin in the original Hebrew. It is a name, like church or family or group. God said, Let us-not ME-make man in OUR image. God truly is a family into which we, literally, may be born! WHAT, then, is man? He is a living being made from and GODis the the dust of the ground. He is CLAY, Master Potter, molding, shaping, forming our CHARACTER-if we respond when he calls and draws us to him. With our willingness he is infusing into us HIS VERY OWN SPIRITUAL HOLY, RIGHTEOUS and PERFECT CHARACTER! WHY man? God created man on the earth to build is in us what the sinning angels refused to let God build in them-his perfect CHARACTER! He is, in his time-order and way, developing us to become VERY GOD-each of us-and to finish the creation of the unfinished UNIVERSE! But, for NOW, we still live in this deceived world led by Satan.
135
4
Mystery of Civilization
stop to think about it, but when you do, could anything be wrapped in more mystery t h a n this worlds civilization? How explain the astonishing paradox, a world of human minds that can send astronauts to the moon and back, produce the marvels 3f science and technology, transplant human hearts-yet cannot solve simple human problems of family life and group relationships, or peace between nations? The developed nations have made awesome progress. They have produced a highly mechanized world providing every luxury, modern convenience and means of pleasure. Yet they are cursed with crime, violence, injustice, sickness and disease, broken homes and families. A t the same time more than one-half the world is living in illiteracy, abject poverty, filth and squalor. Violence and destruction are rapidly multiplying. Many ask, Why, if God exists, does he allow so much violence and human suffering?
EW
136
Mystery of Civilization
We were born into this 20th-century world as i t is. We take it for granted. But we cant explain it. Its like viewing a movie at a point already near the end. We see what is occurring a t that point, but, not having seen it from the beginning and not knowing how events developed to the point of viewing, we simply cannot understand what we are seeing. A fiction writer wrote about a time machine that could transport one back t o some time in history. If we had such a time machine, we should now transport ourselves backward 6,000 years where we could actually see what was transpiring in that original Garden of Eden, a t the foundation of the world. Thats where this civilization started. Then we may better understand why there is now talk of t h e imminent end of the world. How did our civilization develop t o our 20-century state? What a mystery that is to thinking people! Of course most are not thinking people and never ask themselves that question. But if one does, he finds the question enveloped in mystery. So let us understand. It has already been explained in this volume how God c r e a t e d m a n for t h e s u p r e m e p u r p o s e of reproducing himself. But this supreme purpose necessitated the creation in us with our own assent, diligence, effort and joy, the supreme spiritual character of God. But in so doing, why did God place man on the earth? Why this particular planet?
The substance and body of the earth had been created before the angels were placed here. But God intended for the angels to develop the surface of the earth, to beautify and improve it. For this purpose he gave them his government to regulate their conduct and performance together in so doing. But Lucifer, on the throne to administer the government in cooperation and harmony for their world, rebelled. He turned cooperation and harmonious activity into competition, evil, rebellion and destruction. Light on earth was turned t o darkness. Wasteness, decay and ruin came t o the surface of the earth. Then in six days (Ps. 104:30) God sent forth his Spirit and renewed the face of the earth for man. But still the icing on the cake had not been added. God placed man here to do that which sinning angels had not done. Man was to finish the beautification of the earth. God is not the author of confusion, ugliness or decay, but of beauty, perfection, character, t h e best in quality. Look a t the description of Gods heaven-the seat of Gods throne-where, we might say, God lives as described in the fourth chapter of Revelation. God sits on a throne surrounded by brilliant splendor, quality and beauty a n d character. More dazzlingly a n d gloriously beautiful than anything human eyes have ever seen. God intended man to work this earth, improve it, beautify it, give it glorious character-and in so doing to build into his own life the beauty of holiness (I Chron. 16:29). God never intended humans to live in poverty, filth and squalor or ugliness. Man should have beautified the earth, and developed mans character in
138
Mystery of Ciuilization
What Man Has Done But what has man done on the earth where God placed him? Man has made ugly, polluted, defiled, profaned everything his hands have touched. He has polluted the air, befouled the water in the rivers, lakes and seas. He has deteriorated the land, denuded the forests, thus altering rainfall and causing the expansion of deserts. He has worn out the soil by neglecting to give it its sabbaths of rest every seven years. Man has built cities and allowed them to deteriorate into slums, filth and squalor. All because the very first human rejected and turned from God, relying solely on himself-and all Adams children have done likewise. Thus man has built a man-made and Sataninfluenced civilization. Man not only has ruined the earth he should have developed and improved, he has destroyed his own health by wrong living, and degraded and perverted his own spiritual character. Now, at last, as we near the end of the 6,000 years God has allowed him this free rein, man has created the Frankenstein of weapons of mass destruction that can destroy all mankind utterly-unless a merciful God intervenes to save us from ourselves.
A Modest Foretaste
We now live in the era biblical prophecy calls the last days-the last generation before the coming of Christ to rule and accomplish on earth what mankind should have done. In these last days, according to biblical prophecy, knowledge, spiritual as well as material, was to be increased. The true Church of God was to be set back on
139
the track, restoring the glorious knowledge of the faith once delivered to the saints in the days of the original apostles. Jesus Christ, through the Church, built three colleges-two in the United States and one in England. The three campuses, in material beauty, have mutually excelled each other, as a high character physical setting for the development of Gods righteous character in students. T h e beauty of godly character in these students has excelled the physical beauty of the campuses. A royal Queen on a recent six-day visit to the headquarters campus in Pasadena, California, on touring the campus, exclaimed, I have just been in heaven. Three times this campus has won the award of being the most beautiful, best landscaped, and best maintained campus in t h e United States. These campuses are an example of what mankind should have done, and a modest foretaste of the beauty that will blossom forth over the whole earth after Christ and his saints in his kingdom are ruling the earth in the wonderful world tomorrow. Deteriorated, former millionaire mansions have been restored. An area behind t h e m t h a t h a d deteriorated into Pasadena slum area has been cleaned out, and been built into the most beautiful area in Pasadena.
Mystery of Ciuilization
But what did result? Adam took to himself the knowledge of good as well as evil. But it was only human good, no higher than the carnal human level of the human spirit within him. He rejected reliance on God and relied on himself for knowledge, ability and power-all limited t o the fleshly human plane, deceived and led by the perverted Satan. Had he taken of the tree of life, he himself undoubtedly would have succeeded Satan on the throne of t h e earth, restoring t h e government of God, empowered, influenced and led by the Eternal God. But he allowed Satan to enter within his mind. He was, as i t were, kidnapped and held captive by Satan. Thus the first created human disbelieved God, do disobeyed God, chose t o go HIS OWN WAY, his own thing. Adam did i t willingly, but not apparently willfully or with malicious intent. Willingly, Adam was led into captivity by Satan. He had willingly gone along with Satan, the archkidnapper of all time.
All humanity came out of Adam and Eve. The present world was FOUNDED in them. The WORLD has ever since been HELD CAPTIVE! The world had thus chosen THE WAY of the kidnapper, rather than of the potential Parent! But God the Father was to pay the ransom price and even yet bring his potential spiritual children back to him. God did not choose to redeem, correct and restore humanity to him at that time.
Mystery of Civilization
in Christ the same ALL shall be made alive by a resurrection from the dead t o be judged (I Cor. 15:22). But still, none could ever be born of God until Gods holy and perfect spiritual character had been instilled within, by individual choice and proof by performance. God set apart a 7,000-year period to complete his original SUPREME PURPOSE of reproducing himself through man. It was a masterminded MASTER PLAN for working out the PURPOSE here below. For almost 6,000 years a civilization has developed, which we call the world. But it has been a world held WORLD though millions captive. It has become SATANS have been deceived into believing it is Gods world. To this day Satan is still on that throne. Meanwhile Satan has worked IN all humans. He has injected into the world enormous EVILS. But how has Satan injected those evils into the minds of all humans, even of the most scholarly and advanced in education, science, government and areas of awesome human accomplishment? Even that question is a mystery understood by almost no one.
Satan -the Master Broadcaster In Ephesians 2:2, Satan is called the prince of the power of the air, working in-inside the minds of-people. I could never have understood this until: 1) I had understood how radio and television sounds and pictures are transmitted through the air; and 2) I had learned the truth about the human spirit in the human brain. If your radio is set on t h e proper radio wavelength, or television set is tuned to the proper channel, the broadcasters message comes through clearly. Satan as prince of the power of the air
143
broadcasts-not in words, sounds or pictures, but in attitudes, moods, impulses. For example, we read in Ezra 1:1, when King Cyrus of Persia issued a proclamation to send a colony of Jews back to Jerusalem to build the second Temple, he was moved to do so because God stirred up his human spirit-in other words, put the suggestion and impulse in his mind, and the king acted on it. In the same manner Satan moves on the human spirit within people to move them in attitudes of envy, jealousy, resentment, impatience, anger, bitterness and strife. People have no realization of the tremendous power of Satan. The human spirit within each human is automatically tuned to Satans wavelength. It seems as if Satan has surcharged the air over the entire earth with his attitude of self-centeredness and vanity. And so a world-a civilization-developed from the original Adam and Eve. When God shut off the tree of life, that act marked the foundation of the world. It was founded on rejection of God, on disobedience to Gods law, which defines Gods way of life. And all the evils, sorrows, pain and suffering in 6,000 years of human civilization have resulted. God had designed a 7,000-year master plan for accomplishing his tremendous purpose. The first 6,000 years were allotted to allow Satan to remain on earths throne, and for humanity to learn the bitter lesson, through experience, that Satans way of self-centeredness in opposition to Gods law leads only to pain, suffering, anguish and death. The whole world of humankind has been deceived into preferring this getting, self-centered way of life. A t this point, remember, the world had never known of the existence of God the Father until Jesus came and revealed the Father (Matt. 11:27).
144
Mystery of Ciuilization
The world, from its foundation, was cut off from God the Father. Jesus came to reconcile repentant believers to the Father (Rom. 5:lO).
(Gen. 4 2 1 ) and another, a n artificer in brass and iron. Mankind was making progress in material deveiopment, even though growing further from God spiritually. But remember a t this point, that except the Lord build the house, they labour in vain that build it (Ps. 127:l). Also in Matthew 7:24-27, a house built on a faulty foundation is bound to fall. Civilization as we know it was built, not on the foundation of God and his direction, b u t on mans self-reliance under t h e deception and sway of Satan. The Bible tells us little of human development prior to Noah, but after 1,500 to 1,600 years human civilization had become so evil that only one man, Noah, remained righteous. There was a population explosion, but humanity had turned to evil continually. After 100 years of warning by Noah, God sent the Flood to drown all living except Noah, his wife, three sons and their wives-eight people.
The Extent of Evil Notice to what extent humanity had been turned by Satan t o evil. In Genesis 6 5 , God saw t h a t the wickedness of man was great in the earth, and that every imagination of the thoughts of his heart was only evil continually. The earth was filled with violence. Mans thoughts, contemplations and plans were continually on self-centered, lustful and evil objectives. This violence had become so universal that God determined to spare humanity from suffering longer in mounting misery and anguish. God took away their miserable lives, by the earthwide Flood, to be resurrected i n the next second of their consciousness in the Great White Throne resurrection (Rev. 2O:ll-12). They will be brought back
146
Mystery of Civilization
to life in a time when Christ is ruling the earth in righteousness, peace and happiness. Satan will be gone. Their minds then will be opened to Gods TRUTH, and eternal salvation will be opened to them. But God intended to preserve human life-to give humanity a new and fresh start. God found only one man, of all the millions, who was walking with God. Two cant walk together except they be agreed. Noah alone agreed with God and Gods way of life. God used N oah a s a pr eacher of righteousness (I1 Pet. 2:5). For 100 years Noah warned the unheeding world, from age 500 until he was 600 years old. Noah, was perfect in his generations. That is, his heredity, ancestry (Gen. 6:9). Proof of this lies in the meaning of the Hebrew word translated perfect. It may refer either to spiritual character (Gen. 17:l) or to physical characteristics(Lev. 22:21). Therefore Genesis 6:9 allows the translation that Noah was either blameless or unblemished. The context (Gen. 6:2) clearly indicates the latter is the intended meaning of perfect. So a good rendering of Genesis 6:9 is that Noah was the only just man (in spiritual character), and also unblemished (in his genetic heritage) among his contemporaries.
not evil in itself. There had to be wrong use and excess in eating, drinking and marrying-the evil was in the manner, and in the extent of eating, drinking and marrying. It could only be eating improper food, drinking excessively of alcoholic drinks, revelings (Gal. 5:21), rioting, violence. Marrying, to be evil, had to be as in Genesis 6:2, when men took them wives of all which they chose. T h e r e was r a m p a n t a n d universal interracial marriage-so exceedingly universal that Noah, only, was unblemished or perfect in his generations-his ancestry. He was of the original white strain . It is amply evident that by the time of Noah there were a t least the three primary or major racial strains on earth, the white, yellow and black, although interracial marriage produced many racial mixtures. God does not reveal in the Bible the precise origin of the different races. It is evident that Adam and Eve were created white. Gods chosen nation Israel was white. Jesus was white. But it is a fair conjecture that in mother Eve were created ovaries containing the yellow and black genes, as well as white, so that some of the children of Adam and Eve gave rise to black, yellow, as well as white. The one man God chose to PRESERVE the human race alive a f t e r t h e Flood was p e r f e c t i n h i s generations-all his ancestry back to Adam was of the one strain, and undoubtedly that happened to be white-not that white is in any sense superior. If you are a livestock breeder, planning to enter your prize animals in a livestock show-perhaps a t a state or county fair-you will be sure to enter only thoroughbred or pedigreed stock! Mixing the breed alters the characteristics.
148
Mystery of Ciuilization
God originally set t h e bounds of national borders, intending nations to be SEPARATED to prevent interracial marriage. Notice, When the most High divided to the nations their inheritance [speaking of land or geographical boundaries], when he separated [notice-he separated] the sons of Adam, he set the bounds of the people. . . (Deut. 32:8). But people wanted to intermarry-until there would be only ONE RACE! That desire seems still inherent in human nature today! Noah was of perfect lineage in his generations. His wife and three sons were of that same white strain. But Japheth evidently had married an Oriental woman, and Ham a black. We know little more than stated above about civilized development prior to the Flood. Mankind should have learned its lesson by the Flood, but man cut off from God, and swayed by Satan had not, and has not to this present day. But once again, as it was in the days of Noah, Jesus said in a prophecy, there is a population explosion, and evils are multiplying. This time worldwide nuclear war will threaten to erase all humanity from the earth. But, for the sake of the elect of Gods true Church (Matt. 2421-22), God will cut the destruction short-and this time send Jesus Christ as King of kings to replace Satan and sit on earths throne. Origin of Cities
It was only the second generation after the Flood until a man named Nimrod organized people into cities. First was the tower of Babel and the city of Babylon. T h e n Nineveh a n d other cities, which became city-states.
149
God had set the bounds of the nations, intending geographical segregation of the races. At t h i s point I q u o t e from S a t a n s G r e a t Deception, a thesis by C. Paul Meredith (pages 14-16):
Everyone on earth after the Flood knew of God and why he had drowned the wicked. They feared to do evil-at first. . . . Men lived. . , without cities and without laws, and all speaking one language.. . . This group, composed of the only people on the earth (for the others had all been destroyed by the great Flood) began migrating from the mountains of Ararat (Gen. 8 4 ) where the ark had landed And the whole earth was of one language, and of one speech. And it came t o pass, as they journeyed from the east, that they found a plain in the land of Shinar, and they dwelt there (Gen. 11:l-2). These people, now known as Sumerians (Millers Ancient History in Bible Light, page 51), pushing through the mountains of the east, came upon a prodigiously fertile plain built up by the deposits of the Euphrates and the Tigris rivers. This land of Shinar is now known as ancient Babylonia (J. H. Breasteds Ancient Times, page 107). Here was a land that would produce all they desired in abundance.. . . These people, like Adam and Eve, disobeyed God and brought trouble upon themselves. The land was productive, but the wild animals were multiplying faster than the people due to the destruction of the former civilization by the great Flood. Because of their primitive weapons, there was a great danger to life and possessions (Ex. 23:28-29). What could be done about it? Nimrod, the son of Cush, was a large, powerfully built black who developed into a great hunter. I t was he who gathered the people together and organized them t o fight the wild ferocious beasts. He was a mighty hunter before the Lord (Gen. 108-9). In other words, the name of Nimrod was known everywhere for his might. He emancipated the people of the earth after the Flood from their fear of the wild animals. His prestige grew. He became the leader in worldly affairs. He was ambitious.
150
Mystery of Civilization
First City-Babylon
There was a better way to protect the people from the wild animals that roamed the earth than by constantly fighting them. Nimrod built a city of houses and surrounded this city with a high wall and gathered the people therein. Thus the people were protected and Nimrod was able to rule over them. This arrangement was agreeable to the people for They said. . .let us build us a city a n d . . .make us a name, lest we be scattered abroad (Gen. 11:4). The people not only protected themselves from the wild animals by building a walled city but also established authority of their own-let us make us a name. This was to he a central place of mankinds authority-the necessity of their obedience to God was not going to be recognized! Nimrod was their leader. Also they built a tower whose top was to reach unto heaven. With a tower this high they could do as they wished-disobey God and still be safe from his punishment which had drowned the inhabitants of the earth before. This was mankinds first act of open rebellion against God after the Flood-they thought they had placed themselves out of Gods reach if they wished to disobey him. They, like Satan, thought that if they could ascend above the heights of the clouds, they could be like the most High (Isa. 14:14). Cush, Nimrods father, also had much to do with the building of this tower and city (The Two Babylons, by Alexander Hislop, page 26).
These people were not only of one language, they were of three races or families-white, yellow and black. Just as God created varieties in many species of flowers and of animals-for example, many varieties and colors of roses-for greater beauty, so God created the three races and colors of human skin. God intended to prevent racial intermarriages. But man has always wanted to violate Gods laws, intentions and ways. They wanted to become one race or family through intermarriage of races. As mentioned before, God had set the bounds of
151
the races, providing for geographical segregation, in peace and harmony but without discrimination. But the people wanted to be of one amalgamated people. One purpose for the tower of Babel was to unite them, and to prevent them from being scattered in racial geographical segregation. They built the tower, lest we be scattered abroad upon the face of the whole earth in geographical segregation (Gen. 11:4). But God looked upon their building of the tower and said, Behold, the people is one, and they have all one language; and this they begin to do: and now nothing will be restrained from them, which they have imagined to do (Gen. 11:6). What has mankind imagined to do? By this twentieth century man has gone into outer space, flown to the moon and back, invented and produced the most intricate machines, computerized instruments, transplanted hearts, and even attempted to produce life from dead matter. The human minds capacity for material accomplishment seems unlimited. But his problems are not material, but spiritual. And before them he is still helpless without God. So God confounded their languages and scattered them abroad. . . upon the face of all the earth (Gen. 11:8). Continuing from C. Paul Merediths thesis, now out of print (pages 16-17, 25-29):
Then it was that Nimrod began to be a mighty one and a mighty hunter before the Lord [Gen. 108-91in a ruling sense (the Hebrew word for mighty is gibbor, which means tyrant, Strongs Concordance of the Bible). Nimrod became a tyrant over the people. He made the laws. Not only that but he was mighty. . . before the Eternal. (The Hebrew word paniym translated before here, should be translated against-Strongs Concordance of the Bible.) The Bible says Nimrod was against God!. , .
152
Mystery of Cioilization Nimrod kept growing in power but the inborn desire of the people to worship must he satisfied. Nimrod and his followers had turned against the true God. They wanted to glorify God in their own way! They changed the glory of the uncorruptible God into an image made like.. . creeping things (Romans 1:23)-the snake, and other things God had created. (They should have worshiped God in spirit and in truth and not through idols-John 4 2 4 and Ex. 204-5.) With the civil power he wielded, Nimrod set himself u p as the priest of the things worshiped by the people, to obtain a still stronger hold on them and gradually put himself in place of the true God.. . . [But] Noah, the preacher of righteousness (XI Pet. 2 5 ) did stand fast and gained a staunch supporter in his son Shem. While Nimrod was expanding his kingdom so rapidly there was opposition t o Shem, th e representative o f Noah.. . . Nimrod became the representative for the forces of evil in opposing Shem. .. . Shem, a very eloquent person, is said to have obtained the aid of a group of Egyptians who overcame Nimrod. The death of Nimrod seemingly halted the counterfeit pagan worship which he started.
Semiramis.
..
(14 Nimrod had been a man of unbounded ambition, the ambition o f . . . Semiramis-the future Queen of Heaven (Jer. 7:18)-exceeded even his. Nimrod.. . had become the greatest and most powerful figure in the world. He was dead. She clearly saw that if she were t o . . . have the great position and power. . . of the most powerful man on earth, something must he done to assure.. .her power. Nimrods kingdom, which consisted of most of the populated world of that time, had fallen to her. Much of Nimrods power had come from his setting himself u p as the human representatiue of the Sun-God. She must retain this world rule by any and all means. The religious control which had given so much power to [Nimrod] must be used by her also if she were to retain the maximum hold on her subjects. . . . In life [Nimrod] had been honored as a hero; in death she will have him worshiped as a god.. . . 153
Semiramis was actually the founder of much of the worlds pagan religions, worshiping false gods. Even such so-called Christian observances as Christmas, New Years and Easter emerged from the false religious system she developed. For details of this the reader is referred to The Two Babylons, by Alexander Hislop. Today, the English language is fast becoming the chief international language. Men are entering mixed marriages, and starting to get back to one worldwide language.
154
Mystery of Civilization
Nimrod built a number of cities-Babylon, Erech, Accad, Calneh, Nineveh, etc. There developed citystates, each with its own local government. As time passed, nations arose with national governments. Among these were Babylon (which became known as Chaldea), Egypt, Assyria. The religion started by Semiramis was carried into the different nations in the language of each. Semiramis and Nimrod were also identified with the names Isis and Osiris in Egypt. Each nation had its own names for its gods. But the whole labyrinth of pagan religions developed from that which originated with Semiramis. As the generations of humanity continued, this worlds civilization developed. I t started with a government system started by Nimrod, through a religious system that stemmed from Nimrod and Semiramis. The modern system of academic educations was started by Plato, taught by Socrates. Systems of commerce, industry, finance and banking developedbut none of these Satan-influenced and humanly devised systems originated with God. All laws were made by humans-either decrees by kings and despots, or human lawmaking groups, such as city councils, state legislatures, national congresses, parliaments, diets, or whatever. Social customs developed and all facets of civilization up to the chaotic present. In such a world God called out a special nation of his own, not a favorite nation for special favors, but a nation chosen for a special purpose that that nation failed to perform. After the Flood profane history implies that Shem continued more or less in the knowledge and way of God. But no man really walked with God until Abraham. To Abraham, God made all the promises on which ultimate human salvation depends, as well as the
155
material and economic prosperity that has come to the United States and the British.
Mystery of Civilization
writing that lesson. But even at this late hour he has not yet learned it. He has not yet given up on his own self-centered way and come to accept Gods way to his ultimate happiness. God is letting the law of cause and effect take full toll. Mans society, deceived and misled by Satan, has not even yet brought man to admit failure of his course of self-sufficiency. Today mans world is reeling on its last legs. Wars, violence, destruction, terrorism engulf the entire world. Half the world exists in ignorance, illiteracy, poverty, living in filth and squalor. The developed half is sick with ill health, disease, mental stress, fear, frustration, wracked with crime, alcoholism, drug abuse, perverted and misused sex, broken homes, hopelessness in frustration. Mankind is nearing the end of his rope. But even now, God will not intervene to save this defiant humanity from itself until man is finally brought to the point where, if God delayed longer in intervention, man would annihilate himself. God will not intervene and usher in the next world under the kingdom of God until the remnant of mankind has been brought to fully realize human inability to solve problems or bring worldwide peace in happiness and joy. Man must be brought to realize his helplessness and futility without God. At last the weapons of mass destruction have been invented and produced that can erase all life from this planet earth. In these last days of mankinds last gasping of breath, Jesus foretold how it would all end. After Jesus gospel had been suppressed, replaced with a false gospel of men about a different Jesus, he said, This gospel of the kingdom shall be preached in all the world for a witness unto all nations: and then shall the end [of this world] come.
157
This gospel now has been preached into every nation. During its 50 years of proclamation, nuclear energy has developed with capacity for the first time in history to destroy every human alive on earth. Next, Jesus foretold the great tribulation-a time of trouble so great that, unless God does intervene, no human being would be saved alive. But, for the sake of his Church, God will intervene supernaturally before total destruction of humanity. Mankind will be brought t o acknowledge human insufficiency without God. Immediately after, Christ will come in the clouds in supreme power and glory t o unseat Satan, and start Gods own new civilization toward utopia (Matt. 24:14, 31-41). These are the very last days of Satans evil world. Gods utopian civilization will be started with the present generation.
158
Mystery of Israel
I D IT E V E R S T R I K E YOU as most unusual that the Great God should have raised up the ancient nation Israel t o be his chosen people? Consider these seemingly paradoxical facts: God says he is not a respecter of persons. Is he, then, a respecter of nations? Does he have a favorite? Did you ever realize that God denied his chosen people salvation-save only their prophets? That the chosen nation was given only material and national promisesthat Gods Holy Spirit was inaccessible to them? Did it ever occur to you that the Holy Bible is the book of and concerning only that one people Israel? And that other nations are mentioned only if and as they came into contact with Israel? And heres another shocker!-almost totally unrealized today by Christianity-even by Judaism and not recorded or understood by historians! The porthern
159
Bible where the word Jews occurs is in I1 Kings chapter 16 and verse 6, where the nation Israel was at war, in an alliance with Syria, against the Jews! The truly amazing truth about Israel is a mystery totally unknown by any religion-by Christianity-by even Judaism! It is indeed true that the nation Israel was Gods chosen people. But understand: They were not chosen as teachers pet nor for special favors. They were chosen for a special PURPOSE preparatory t o t h e ultimate establishment of the kingdom of God! I t is an intriguing story! The answer to this chapter title, Mystery of Israel, has great significance in Gods PURPOSE for all peoples! One cannot understand the real purpose and incredible potential of man without this vital knowledge.
Man of Destiny
Abram, as he was originally named, was not seeking God. But God chose to call and test Abram. This ancient patriarch, later in Scripture, is called the father of the
160
Mystery of Israel
faithful. God was calling him for a very special purpose. That purpose was not to give him salvation or get him into heaven. God was calling him because he had seen in this man the potentialities of obedience to God and of leadership. God was calling him to be prepared for special service and ultimately high position in the kingdom of God-the coming world tomorrow.-J-qEoLe now-from a-book,! wrote more than 50 year_s__ago,-The UniterLStates-and Brituin-in ~ r o p ~ ~commencing ~cy, wits page 16:
T o this man, Abram, God commanded: Get thee out of thy country, and from thy kindred, and from thy fathers house, unto a land that I will shew thee: and I will make of thee a great nation (Gen. 12:1-2). Here was a command, which was a condition and a PROMISE, provided the condition of obedience was met. And so now, as God had started the whole world with one man, he started his own peculiar nation in the world from one single man-Abraham. As the world, which has strayed far from God and the blessings of Gods worship and rule, was started with one man who rebelled against God and rejected his rule, so Gods own flesh-born nation, from which is to be reborn the kingdom of God, was started with one man who obeyed God without question, and accepted his divine rule. Did Abram stop to argue and reason? Did he say: Lets reason this out a bit first; here I a m in Babylon, in the very center of all this worlds commerce, society and gaiety. Why cant you just as well give me this promise right here, where everything is pleasant and alluring? Why must I leave all this and go over to that uncivilized land? Did Abram quibble, resist, argue, rebel? He certainly did not! The inspired Scripture account states simply: So Abram departed. There was no arguing with God. There was no human reasoning that God was all wrong. There were no foolish questions: Why must I leave here? Cant I do as I please? There was no stopping to say, Well, heres the way I look a t it.
161
Here again we see the principle of duality. Abram was in the very center of this worlds developing civilization. Remember, it was a world held captive-a world developing on Satans pattern. God had chosen Abram to become the patriarch of his nation Israel, the congregation or Church of the Old Testament. The principle of duality is interwoven all through the workings of God in fulfilling this great purpose through humanity on earth. There was the physical congregation of Israel under the Old Testament and t h e spiritual Church of God under the New Testament. The word church as originally written in the Greek of t h e New Testament was e k k l e s i a , which means called-out-ones. As Israel of the Old Testament was the physical forerunner and type of t h e Church of t h e New Testament so God now called out the progenitor of the nation Israel from Satans world. Abraham later regarded himself as a stranger, a sojourner and a pilgrim in the earth. This was not his world: These all died in faith, not having received the promises, but having seen them afar off, and were persuaded of them, and embraced them, and confessed that they were strangers and pilgrims on the earth. For they that say such things declare plainly that they seek a country [a different civilization]. And truly, if they had been mindful of that country from whence they came out, they might have had opportunity to have returned. But now they desire a better country, that is, an heavenly: wherefore God is not ashamed to be called their God: for he hath prepared for them a city (Heb. 11:13-16). Seeking a better country, a heavenly country, which will be the kingdom of God filling the earth. 162
Mystery of Israel And God established this man [Abram], whose name he later changed to Abraham, as the father of his nation, Israel! To Abraham and his descendants were all the promises of God made. And we must become like Abraham, and through Christ, one of his children, if we are to inherit the promise of eternal life in Gods kingdom. Of his peculiar flesh-born nation, Israel, the Eternal said: This people have I formed for myself; they shall shew forth my praise (Isa. 4321). That prophecy shall yet-and soon-he fulfilled! Dual Promises t o Abraham Few have realized it, but a duality runs all the way through the plan of God in working out his purpose here below. There was the first Adam, material and carnsl; and there is Christ, the second Adam, spiritual and divine. There was the Old Covenant, purely material and temporal; and there is the New Covenant, spiritual and eternal. God made man mortal, physical, of the dust of the ground and of the human kingdom; but through Christ he may be begotten of God to become immortal, spiritual, and of the kingdom of God. And in like manner there were two phases to the promises God made to Abraham-the one purely material and national, the other spiritual and individual. The spiritual promise of the Messiah, and of salvation through him, is well known by the most superficial Bible students. They know that God gave the spiritual promise to Abraham of Christ to be born as Abrahams descendant-and that salvation comes to us through Christ. But-and this will sound unbelievable, yet it is true-almost no one knows what that salvation is; what are the promises of salvation we may receive through Christ; how we may receive them, or when-incredible though that sounds! But that truth belongs in another chapter. What is essential to the theme of this chapter is the fact that God also made another entirely different, most amazing national and material promise to Abraham which has been almost entirely overlooked. Notice now again how God first called Abram, and the twofold nature of his promises: Now the Lord had said unto Abram, Get thee out of thy country, and from thy kindred, and
163
from thy fathers house, unto a land that I will shew thee: and I will make of thee A GREAT NATION,, and in thee shall all families of the earth be blessed (Gen. 121-3). Notice the twofold promise: 1) I will make of thee A GREAT-INGoN-the nationai- material promise that hii fleih-born children should &come a g g i T n a G z a - p r o m i s e of RACE; . . . and in thee shall all families of the earth be 2) blessed-the spiritual pLomise of GRACE. This same promise is repeated in Genesis 22:18 And in thy seed shall all the nations of the earth be blessed. rzfEto-Christ, as plainly affirme Right here is where those who profess t o b e Christians-and their teachers-have fallen into error and scriptural blindness. They have failed to notice the twofold promise God made t o Abraham. They recognize the messianic promise of spiritual salvation through the one seed-Christ. They sing the hymn Standing on the Promises-falsely supposing the promises t o be going to heaven a t death. This is a pivotal point. This is the point where professing Christians and their teachers jump the track of truth. This is the point where they switch off the track that would lead them t o t h e missing master key t o t h e prophecies. They miss the fact that God gave Abraham promises of physical RACE as well as spiritual GRACE. But the plain fact that the great nation promise refers alone to race-not the one seed of Galatians 316, who was Jesus Christ the son of Abraham and the Son of God, but to the plural, multiple seed of natural fleshly birth-is made certain by Gods repetition of his promise in greater detail later.
164
Mystery of Israel
Abram, hut thy name shall he Abraham; for a father of M A N Y NATIONS have I made thee (Gen. 17:1-5). Notice, t h e promise is now conditional upon Abrahams obedience and perfect living. Notice, the great nation now becomes many nations-more than one nation. This cannot refer to the one seed, Christ. The following verses prove that. And I will make thee exceeding fruitful, and I will make nations of thee, and kings [more than one] shall come out of thee (verse 6). Notice, these nations and kings shall come out of Abraham-physical generation-multiple seed, in addition to the one descendant through whom scattered individuals may become Abrahams children by spiritual begettal through Christ (Gal. 3:29). T h e scattered, individual Christians do not form NATIONS. The Church, it is true, is spoken of as a royal priesthood, an holy nation (I Peter 2:9), but Christs Church is not divided into many nations. This is speaking of race, not grace. And I will establish my covenant between me and thee and thy seed after thee in their generations . . . (Gem 17:7). The seed is plural-in their generations. And I will give unto thee, and to thy seed after thee, t h e land wherein thou art a stranger, all the land of Canaan [Palestine], for an everlasting possession; and I will be THEIR God (verse 8). Notice, the land-material possession-is promised to the plural seed, of whom he is their, not his, God. The plural pronoun their is used again in verse 9: and thy seed after thee in their generations. But now examine this PROMISE carefully! The future of great nations rests on the promises the eternal Creator made to Abraham. The only hope of life after death for anyone-regardless of race, color or creed-is dependent on the spiritual phase of these promises to Abraham-the promise of grace through the one seed-Christ the Messiah!
165
the greatest world powers; the basis for any personal salvation spiritually; for any hope of eternal life for humans. These are stupendous promises. The future of mankind is based, by the Creator God, on them. Jesus Christ came to confirm the promises made unto the fathers (Rom. 15:8)-Abraham, Isaac and Jacob. These same promises were repromised t o Isaac, Abrahams son, and to Jacob, the son of Isaac.
After 430 years, God raised u p his nation Israel-descendants of Abraham, Isaac and Jacob, whose name God changed to Israel. T o lead these people out of Egyptian slavery and to the Promised Land, God called Moses. Moses was not seeking God. But God had caused Moses to be trained specifically for this commission by having him reared as a prince in the palace of the Egyptian pharaoh. So now again, after Moses had been specially trained for leadership, God called him out of the world to lead the descendants of Abraham, Isaac and Jacob out of Egyptian slavery.
So now again we come to the question, WHYdid God raise up this special Hebrew nation as the chosen people? WHY, when God never made accessible to them his Holy Spirit? One point to notice here. The probability is that these people were all-or nearly all-of the white racial strain, unchanged since creation. After Jacob and his sons and families had come into Egypt at Josephs behest, they were kept in the locale of Goshen-geographically separated from the Egyptians, marrying among themselves. In this connection, go back momentarily t o Abraham. He prevented his son Isaac from intermarrying among the dark Canaanites then in the land.
166
Mystery of Zsrael
He sent his chief servant to his own family and racial people t o find a wife for Isaac. Abraham said, . . .thou shalt not take a wife unto my son of the daughters of the Canaanites, among whom I dwell (Gen. 24:3). The next generation, Jacob married Leah and Rachel, daughters of Laban, nephew of Abraham, who lived in the land of Haran, brother of Abraham. The whole community of Haran, where Laban lived, was of the same family ancestry as Abraham. Jacob had six sons by Leah, two from Rachel-all of the same original racial stock, and two each from the maids of Rachel and Leah-12 in all. Even the maids of Leah and Rachel undoubtedly were of pure Hebrew stock. These 12 became the progenitors of the 1 2 tribes of the nation Israel. But God specially prepared from birth and called Moses, with Aaron his brother to assist as his spokesman. (Moses stuttered.) In the plagues God caused against Egypt, God was turning the Egyptian gods and objects of worship against them to show them that these were not gods. Even t h e plagues were s e n t i n L O V E for t h e Egyptians. The final plague followed the sacrifice of the Passover on the 14th day of the first month of Gods sacred calendar-starting in the spring. The Israelites went out of Egypt during the night part of the 15th. T h e y reached t h e Red Sea. B u t pharaoh h a d meanwhile changed his mind and, with his army, pursued them. The children of Israel had reached the Red Sea, and they were stopped as if dead. There was no bridge. It was too far to swim, with their women and children. Behind them the pharaohs army was in hot pursuit. There was
167
nothing they could do. They were stopped-HELPLESS! At that point they had to rely on GOD! In Egypt God had caused their release from slavery by a series of supernatural plagues. Now God caused the waters of the Red Sea t o roll back t o form a watery WALL on either side, with a wide path on the dry sea floor between. The Israelites walked on through. On the opposite side they looked back and saw the Egyptians entering the seafloor path. When the Egyptians were all within the seawall passage, God allowed the waters to flow back, drowning the Egyptian army.
Broken Promises
In due time the Israelites pitched tents a t the foot of Mount Sinai. God did not make them his nation, under his theocratic rule, without their consent. Through Moses, God put to them his proposition. If they would obey his laws of HIS GOVERNMENT, he would prosper them, and make them the wealthiest and most powerful of nations. Yet Gods birthright PROMISES were of a national and material nature-no spiritual salvation. The people agreed. Thus they became Gods chosen nation. BUTWHY? This we know: Gods purpose for them had a definite relation t o p r e p a r i n g f o r t h e u l t i m a t e KINGDOM OF GOD-when the GOVERNMENT OF GOD would be reestablished over all the earth, and spiritual salvation would be offered to ALL! Undoubtedly, one reason was to preserve the original physical racial strain. But there was much more. Nations had developed knowledge. Mankind was
168
Mystery of Israel
limited, after Adams rebellion, to the acquisition of physical and material knowledge. But, like educated men and scientists today, they were saying, Give us sufficient knowledge, and we will solve all problems and eradicate all evils-we will create utopia! Up t o that time, mankind had been denied spiritual knowledge and fulfillment from God. God now decided t o give them knowledge of his law-his kind of government-his way of life! He was going to prove t o the world that without his Holy Spirit their minds were incapable of receiving and utilizing such knowledge of the TRUE WAYS OF LIFE. He was going t o demonstrate to them that the mind of MAN, with its one spirit, and without the addition of Gods Holy Spirit, could not have spiritual discernment-could not solve human problems, could not cure the evils that were besetting humanity. The nation Israel would be his guinea pig to demonstrate that fact. God had chosen a nation of almost perfect original strain in its generations-its ancestry. Also they had t h e quality heredity of Abraham, Isaac and Jacob (Israel). So God entered into a covenant with them, making them HIS NATION. It also represented a MARRIAGE covenant, with Israel the wife, promising obedience t o her husband-GOD. It was the physical type of the COVENANT. yet-to-come spiritual NEW And what did it prove?
intelligence and character tendencies. Environment includes all external influences and self-determined motivations-whether good or evil. Heredity-if of good and high quality-may start one off at an advantage. An inspiring environment, uplifting influences and right self-motivation may further improvement. Such environment may turn one of inferior heredity into a real success in life. But a discouraging environment, evil influences and misguided self-motivation may turn one of excellent heredity into failure and an evil nature. God started his chosen nation off-even though brought out of slavery-with all the natural advantages of a superior heredity. God pulled them out of slavery and gave them a new and fresh start. One might say they had everything God-given going for them. But now WHY? Why did God so prepare and raise up this nation Israel? Consider WHY God created mankind in the first place! GODIS REPRODUCING HIMSELF THROUGH MAN! He is creating in MAN Gods own perfect holy and righteous spiritual CHARACTER! And that, in turn, is purposed to restore the GOVERNMENT OF GODover all the earth. And, further, to create BILLIONS OF GODBEINGS TO FINISH THE CREATION OF THE VAST UNFINISHED UNIVERSE! And, beyond that? Ah! God has not as yet revealed what he purposes beyond that! Everything God has done, since the creation of the first humans, has been another progressive step in Gods overall supreme PURPOSE!
Type of the Kingdom of God
T h e immediate purpose, so far in the history of mankind, is to prepare for THE KINGDOM OF GOD,
170
Mystery of Israel
which will
WIDE!
RESTORE
the
GOVERNMENT
OF
GODEARTH
The kingdom of God is the actual begotten and born FAMILY OF GOD,which will first actually appear by a resurrection and instantaneous translation a t Christs Second Coming! And by begotten and BORN sons of God, emphatically I do NOT mean those deceived into the current BORN-AGAIN teachingthat anyone who professes to receive Christ is already, in this present human life, born again. THAT A PARAMOUNT DECEPTION by which Satan the IS devil has DECEIVED those (the many in a so-called Christianity) who have accepted a false conversion. They may be well meaning-but nevertheless DECEIVED! of course a deceived person does not And know he is deceived-he may be wholly sincere! But now THINK! HOW does the Old Testament nation Israel play a part in progressively preparing for the KINGDOM OF GOD?
coming millennium. And probably Joshua, who succeeded Moses, will be Moses assistant in t h a t office of worldwide national governments. What of the nation Israel as a whole? They, despite their favorable heredity, failed utterly to qualify. When God put the proposal of their formation as his nation before them, they replied, All that the Lord hath spoken we will do (Ex. 19:8). But they utterly broke their word and rebelled. They were in a husband-and-wife relation with the Lord God. But the Lord said later of them: Surely as a wife treacherously departeth from her husband, so have ye dealt treacherously with me, 0 house of Israel, saith the Lord (Jer. 3:20). The nation Israel under Moses was O N E RACE-wry little interracial marriage had marred their racial nationality. The Promised Land was then called Canaan. Canaanites, racially dark, had settled in the land. But God had given this land to the racial descendants of Abraham BY PROMISE! I t did not belong t o t h e Canaanites or other races settled there. When God moved his two million-plus Israelites in there, he commanded them through Moses: When ye are passed over Jordan into the land of Canaan; then ye shall drive out all the inhabitants of the land from before you, and destroy all their pictures, and destroy all their molten images. . . and ye shall dispossess the inhabitants of the land, and dwell therein: for I have given you the land t o possess it.. . . But if ye will not drive out the inhabitants of the land from before you; then it shall come to pass, that those which ye let remain of them shall be pricks in your eyes, and thorns in your sides, and shall vex you in the land wherein ye dwell (Num. 3351-53, 55).
172
Mystery of Israel
Sinai was a type and forerunner of the NEWCOVENANT. It will be made with the New Testament CHURCH, which is the spiritual Israel and Judah (Jer. 31:31; Heb. 86, 10). Meanwhile, an individual few in Old Testament Israel did obey God and by becoming Gods prophets, they became part of the very foundation of the New OF Testament CHURCH GOD.The Church is built on the solid FOUNDATION of the prophets (Old Testament) and apostles (New Testament), Jesus Christ himself being the chief corner stone (Eph. 2:20). Among them, Elijah probably will be head, under Christ and Abraham-Isaac-Israel, over the Church, worldwide. John the Baptist may be under Elijah. There are indications that the prophet Daniel will be head over all gentile nations, and under Moses and Christ.
I have spoken, during the past 20 years, t o many heads of governments over Europe, Asia, Africa, South America. In China, I believe the Communist heads of government believe that communism, once it gains control of the earth, will solve all problems and evils. But many kings, emperors, presidents and prime ministers I have conferred privately with now realize the
174
Mystery of Israel
problems are beyond human ability to solve. And this I said plainly t o many leaders of the Peoples Republic of China. The problems and evils are of a spiritual nature. And a carnal mind without Gods Spirit cannot come to grips with spiritual problems. The many decades and centuries of ancient Israel PROVED THAT! Until Israel, God withheld knowledge of the right ways of human living from mankind. To Israel God gave his statutes and judgments, as well as his spiritual law. But these perfect laws did not, without Gods Holy Spirit, solve the nations problems! God could say: I am GOD.Take my word for it. But God gave PROOF, through Israel, that W I T H O K T H J Spirit, MAN IS HELPLESS! They even had GODt o oy a p p e ? i r K B z T h e y did not have his Spirit within them. Let this point be emphasized. When the first man, Adam, rejected the tree of life, and took to himself the knowledge of good and evil, he limited his power and ability to do good to the level of his human spirit. There is good as well as evil in human nature. Good is a spiritual attribute, not a physical or material action. Had Adam taken of the tree of life, the Holy Spirit of God would have entered him and joined with his spirit, uniting him with God as a son of God. The Holy Spirit meant more than spiritual knowledge of good. Not the hearers of the law (good) but the doers of the law are _ _ _ - ~ - ~ _ _ justified (Rom. 2:43. Love is the fulfilling of the law, but not human love. I t requires the love OF GOD... shed abroad in our hearts by the Holy [Spirit] (Rom. 5:5). God revealed his law to the nation Israel. One of the purposes of this nation was t o prove by human experience that man without the Spirit of God within him cannot be righteous.
175
So, a t this point, let us cover a brief synopsis of the actual history of the nation, and of the gentile nations of the world. A most important declaration and promise was given t o the people of Israel, as recorded in Leviticus 26. Again I quote from my book The United States and Britain in Prophecy, starting page 110:
The Pivotal Prophecy
In this central prophecy, God reaffirmed the birthright promise-but with conditions-for those of Moses day! The birthright. tcibaed ED hraim nud-ManagEh were then with the other tribes-as one nation. Obedience to Gods laws would bring the vast national wealth and blessings of the birthright not only to Ephraim and Manasseh, but the whole NATION would automatically have shared them a t that time. Notice carefully that two of the Ten Commandments are mentioned for emphasis. These were the main test commandments! They were the test of obedience, and of faith in and loyalty to God. God said: Ye shall make you no idols nor graven image. . .t o bow down unto it: for I am the Lord your God. Ye shall keep MY sabbaths.. . (verses
1-2).
There was a condition-a great big if -to their receiving actual fulfillment of this stupendous birthright promise in their time! God said: If ye walk in my statutes, and keep my commandments, and do them; then I will give you rain in due season, and the land shall yield her increase.. . (verses 3-4). All wealth comes out of the ground. They would enjoy bumper crops the year round, one harvest on the heels of another. Verse 6 And I will give PEACE in the land ... and none shall make you afraid . . .neither shall the sword [of war] go through your land. What a blessing! What nation enjoys continuous peace, without fear of invasion? Of course, in this world, every nation has enemies. What if enemy nations attacked? Verses 7-8: And ye shall chase your enemies, and they shall fall before you by the
176
Mystery of Israel
sword. And five of you shall chase an hundred, and an hundred of you shall put ten thousand to flight.. . . Since many nations in this world always have been aggressors, Israel would have been attacked. A nation with the military superiority t o defeat all attackers would soon become the dominant, most powerful nation on earthespecially with resources and great wealth from the ground. Verse 9 For I will have respect unto you, and make you fruitful, and multiply you, and establish my covenant with you.
withholding of the
177
birthright promises of national prosperity and dominance, applied only to the House of Israel headed by the tribes of Ephraim and Manasseh. How these promises were actually fulfilled a t the precise time of 1800 to 1804 is one of the most amazing fulfillments of prophecy in the Bible and in the history of mankind. This fulfillment, step by step, is vividly revealed in our free book T h e United States und Britain in Prophecy. This nation Israel promised to obey God. But they never did. Even while Moses was with the Eternal atop Mount Sinai receiving further instructions, the people melted and fashioned a golden calf to worship instead of the Eternal God. Because of their grumbling, their lack of faith and their disobedience, God did not allow them to enter the Promised Land for 40 years. At the end of the 40 years Moses died. The Israelites were led across the Jordan River into the Promised Land under Joshua. During Joshuas life they obeyed God more or less but not fully. After Joshua died, every man did what seemed right in his own mind. These people through disobedience to God would fall captive to surrounding kings. Then they would cry out to the Eternal and he would send a leader to free them. Again and again this process was repeated.
Mystery of Israel
and towering leader. But Saul disobeyed God and the Eternal replaced him with King David. David personally was not without sin, but each time he repented and turned from each sin. David became a man after Gods own heart. He wrote a most important book in the Bible, the book of Psalms. God made an unconditional and unbreakable covenant with David, assuring that his dynasty, ruling over Israelites, would continue unbroken forever. Finally, in Gods due time, that throne will be taken over by Jesus Christ, a t his Second Coming to earth.
Levites from the office of priesthood because he feared they might turn the hearts of the people back t o Rehoboam and thereby he would lose his new throne. He also changed the h$.y festivals of the seventh month to the+ightkm_o_n_th. There is strong icdycation that-he also c h 3 g e d the seventh day Sabbath to Sund3xL the first day of the week. The Sabbath-had been made an everlastingsove-nancby-God between-him andIsrael, by _./. whickthey-would .bejdentified-from all- other people (Ex. 31:12-18) as Gods nation Israel and by which they would be brought into weekly remembrance that the Eternal was their creator. For in six days God renewed or re-created the earth and creation is the proof of --_ God.
~~~
/-
T h e T e n Lost Tribes
Thus the peopleLf&r_ael became known ash-e-ten ost tribes.-They had lost the covenamtmjgnjd&kg them as Israel. They had lost the knowledge of God their creator. They soon lost even t h e Hebrew language. During the time of 19 kings and seven dynasties, the 10-tribed kingdom of Israel continued in sin, rejecting the pleadings of prophets God sent t o them. In a siege of war, about 721 to 718 B.c., the House of Israel was conquered by Assyria. They were moved from their homes, farms and villages and transported as a captive people to Assyria on the southern shores of the Caspian Sea. From there, within a hundred years, thev migrated_ northwest and became known as the LesLTedPribes. The world has never known what became of them. The world in general, mistakenly, has considered that all Israelites were Jews. But in the Bible, the term Jew,. appliedmJy-~to.the-txibes-ofJud& Bg-amin and _4e_v_;l
180
_ I
My8tery of Israel
they
ChaJdean Empire, to be followed by the P2rcan Empire, a n d then, in turn, the Greco-Macedonian E m -m i i e ___.--- Roman Empire, and the-entire system of human g o v e r n m e n t s 7 be destroyed and replaced by the kingdom of God headed by Christ as King of kings ruling all the earth.
~
Mystery of Israel
It was during this 500 years that God sent so-called minor prophets to the Jews in Judea. Also it was during this period that the Jewish rabbis altered points in the religion started through Moses into the Judaism religion among Jews in the lifetime of Jesus. The stage was set for his appearing. Now let us return to the 10-tribed kingdom of Israel. As stated above, they had, before the captivity of Judah, migrated west by northwest. The -Assyrians .--. settle&n_central Europe, and theGmans,-ccdoubtedl y d r e - i w the descendants of the ancient Ass x r - . However, the so-called Lost Ten Tribes--ekingdarnafIsrael -continued into western Europe and B r s n . We cannot be positive in respect to the various tribal identities today, but probably France or at least the northern French are the tribe of Reuben.,---_ Ephraim and Manasseh iourneyed on into the British Isle: They became a colonizing people, and according to prophecy they were to J o s ~ e i i i . r s & h n ~ ,
_----
name of my fathers Abraham and Isaac; and let them grow into a multitude in the midst of the earth (Gen. 48:14-16). Continuing from The United States and Britain in Prophecy:
Let who grow into this promised multitude? Let whose descendants become that numerous seed, which shall number into billions? Not Judah, the father of the Jews-note it!-but EPHRAIM MANASSEH! AND Why have the eyes and understanding of church leaders and Bible students been blinded to this plain fact of Scripture? Notice, Israel did not confer this blessing on just one, but on both-Bless the lads, he said. This blessing went upon them jointly. Let my name be named on them was part of this blessing. His name was ISRAEL. Hence, it was the descendants of these lads, not the descendants of Judah, or the Jews, who were named ISRAEL. clear it is that the How name ISRAEL to be indelibly stamped on EPHRAIM was and MANASSEH! A shocking fact-and yet plainly proved, right before your eyes! And remember, this scripture needs no interpretation or special meaning or hidden symbolism for you to understand! Here is the plain, simple statement that Jacobs name, which was changed t o Israel, would become the very POSSESSION and property-the label on the peoples of Ephraim and Manasseh! WHO,then, according to your Bible, is the real Israel (racially and nationally) of today? Ephraim and Manasseh! Ephraim and Manasseh together received the right to the name ISRAEL.t was t o become the national name of I their descendants. And their descendants were never Jews! Fix this fact firmly in your mind! Thus it is that many of the prophecies about Israel or Jacob do not refer to Jews or to any of the nations that are today the descendants of the other tribes of Israel. Mark that well! Few, indeed, are the clergymen, theologians, or professed Bible scholars who know that today. Many refuse to know it!
184
Mystery of Israel
Together the descendants of these two lads, Ephraim and Manasseh, were to grow into the promised multitude-the nation and company of nations. These national blessings are poured upon them jointly. These are the collective blessings which the lads together received-but not the other tribes!
Ephraim and Manasseh, who were to become the wealthiest and most powerful nations on earth.
Mystery of Israel
they came, as immigrants, to the United States AFTER the New England colony had become the separate nation. This does not mean that all foreigners who have emigrated to America are of the stock of Manasseh, but undoubtedly many are. Israel, however, always did absorb gentiles, who became Israelites through living in Israels land and intermarrying. The U.S. has become known as the melting pot of the world. Instead of refuting a Manasseh ancestry, this fact actually confirms it. The proof that the U.S. is Manasseh is overwhelming. Manasseh was to separate from Ephraim and become the greatest, wealthiest single nation of earths history. America alone has fulfilled this prophecy. Manasseh was in fact a thirteenth tribe. There were twelve original tribes. Joseph was one of these twelve. But when Joseph divided into two tribes and Manasseh separated into an independent nation, it became a thirteenth tribe. Could it be mere coincidence that it started, as a nation, with thirteen colonies? But what about the other tribes of the so-called Lost Ten Tribes? While the birtliright was Josephs, and its blessings have come to the British Commonwealth of nations and the United States of America, yet the other eight tribes of Israel were also Gods chosen people. They, too, have been blessed with a good measure of material prosperity-but not the dominance of the birthright. We lack space for a detailed explanation of the specific identity of all of these other tribes in the nations of our twentieth century. Suffice it to say here that there is ample evidence that these other eight tribes have descended into such northwestern European nations as Holland, Belgium, Denmark, northern France, Luxembourg, Switzerland, Sweden, Norway. The people of
187
Iceland are also of Viking stock. T h e political boundaries of Europe, as they exist today, do not necessarily show lines of division between descendants of these original tribes of Israel.
Mystery of Israel
Thine hand shall be lifted u p upon thine adversaries, and all thine enemies shall be cut off (verse 9) or defeated. They WERE defeated from the beginning of Gods birthright blessing on America and Britain starting about 1803, through the First World War, the Second World War, until the turning point of the Korean War a t the end of 1950. Since that time, however, these blessings are surely being taken away-and neither America nor Britain has come out on top in any major conflict since that time! So this prophecy shows that a t the very time we were receiving Gods blessings, we were a tremendous BLESSING t o the other nations of the earth-for i t is our peoples who have rescued the other nations of the world time and again through the Marshall Plan, the Point Four program, the Alliance for Progress, the hundreds of millions of bushels of wheat for starving nations. The Hoover Program saved up vast food supplies after World War I. It saved millions in other nations from starvation! Anciently Joseph saved up the wheat and food and made it available to others. MODERN Joseph did also. BUT-we are stiff-necked and rebellious toward God and his law, while our ancient forefather Joseph served and obeyed God with a whole heart. It is our peoples who have been like a lion among the other nations of the earth-preserving in two great world wars the peace of the world and stability for all human life on this planet! Sudden Destruction Yet, in this detailed prophecy, God says: And it shall come to pass IN THAT DAY, saith the Lord, that I will cut off thy horses [war-horses, Moffatt translation]tanks, ships, rockets-out of the midst of thee, and I
189
will destroy thy chariots: and I will cut off the cities [by hydrogen bombs?] of thy land, and throw down all thy strong holds (verses 10-11). (Notice, all the strongholds.) God says he will do this! GOD determines the outcome of wars (Ps. 33:lO-19). How plain can you get? Here God identifies the GREAT peoples of the earth who are the most wealthy and beneficent, the most POWERFUL-yet at the very time their power reaches its zenith, he suddenly breaks the pride of their power (see Leviticus 26:19), cuts off their implements of war and destroys their cities! Why? Because, as the prophet continues to explain, we have too much witchaafl and too many soothsayers: (astrology) and false ministers in our lands who refusedo ____ preach with-autho-Jhe commandments and wavs Clf gav-&gGodL In America, we print on our money In God We Trust. But instead we rely on foreign allies and our own human ingenuity, not in God.
Mystery of Israel
After the year 1800 we prospered because of Abrahams obedience and Gods unbreakable promises t o him. But now having received such individual and national prosperity, we sin by stealing from God. That has brought our nations under a curse. We have won our last war. Nothing but troubles now lie ahead until we repent. Gods tithe is holy to him (Lev. 27:30). Gods Sabbath, the seventh day of every week, is holy t o him. Yet we have put no difference between the holy and the profane (Ezek. 22:26).
During most of the so-called church age in Roman Catholic teaching, and in England and the United States since the Victorian age, sex was a virtually forbidden topic of conversation, seldom mentioned. Satan made sure sex was considered as shameful and so evil it was not talked about. About the turn of the century, Sigmund Freud, founder of psychoanalysis, changed all of that. Up until World War I it was illegal in the U.S. t o publish, sell, or even loan a book containing sex knowledge. After World War I the legal barriers on the imparting of sex information toppled. An avalanche of books, pamphlets, newspaper articles descended on the public. Yet in all this the most vitally needed dimension of knowledge was missing.
The Missing Dimension i n Sex The authors book The Missing Dimension in Sex is offered, gratis, upon request. It provides this missing dimension of knowledge. Beginning the middle of the twentieth century, the catch phrase the new morality was completely changing public attitudes. Today sexuality is openly discussed in the public media, especially in television, turning promiscuous sex into public acceptance. Today it may be questioned whether as many as 2 percent of young brides go to the altar as virgins. Marriage for much of society is on the way out. In some areas divorces virtually equal marriages. Family life is being broken down though the family is a basic building block of any stable civilization. More and more, children are not wanted. Abortion is fast gaining public acceptance. God created sex, not only to keep humanity alive, but to bring delectable, joyfully pleasurable happiness in pure and wholesome love between husband and wife,
192
Mystery of Israel
and as a means of binding tightly together a happily married couple. But under modern attitudes, the cord supposedly tying a husband and wife tightly together is proving t o be the cord that cuts the marriage in two. Its time you knew the truth about the missing dimension in sex. It is set forth frankly, fearlessly, rationally and spiritually, as well as physically, in our book mentioned above. __ God condemns homosexuality. He destroyed the whole p o p u l a t i o n s _ q f _ S o d o m a n d - G o m > ~ f o ~ s & ~ Eiiscocdemned in thefirst chapter of Romans, saying . no such person can enter the kingdom of God. Then we try to change the ugly, reproachful name homosexual, and call those who practice it gays. The public media and the public in general are coming t o make this perversion acceptable by calling it sexual preference. We are becoming nations of drunkards and thousands are being killed on our highways by drunken drivers. Yet excessive drinking of alcohol is encouraged through millions of dollars of advertising on TV commercials. We inflict on ourselves through sin, such diseases as alcoholism, AIDS, herpes and other venereal diseases, and then try to prevent the penalty of those sins by medical and scientific studies to produce cures that will allow the sins to continue. Now continue the prophecy in Micah 5. Therefore, God will punish and destroy us-unless we repentjust before and leading up t o the utter destruction t o come upon the heathen (verse 15), which will take place a t the very END of this age and a t the second return of Jesus Christ as King of kings! There is no other people that even remotely fulfills this great prophecy! But the American and British peoples fulfill i t precisely! As the pride of our power continues t o be
193
as the British gradually lose their foreign sea gates and possessions around the earth, as America signs away ownership of the Panama Canal-control over this vital sea gate-as the gold supply drains away, and weather upsets increase, this focal prophecy alone represents giant PROOF as t o where t h e modern remnant of the peoples of Israel resides today!
BROKEN,
Punishment on All Nations! It will now be made plain-from Gods own warning prophecies-that this greatest multiplied intensity of corrective punishment will fall on Britain a n d America-including British peoples in Commonwealth countries. And it will strike them down first! But they are not t h e only nations t o suffer corrective disaster. God is Creator of all other nations, too! God is concerned about the people and races we have called heathen. They, too, are human. They, too, are made in Gods own likeness, with the potential of being molded into Gods spiritual and character IMAGE! God sent the apostle Paul to gentile nations! All mankind has rebelled against, rejected, and turned from God and his ways! There can never be peace on earth until all nations will have been turned to God and his ways, ruled by his supreme government! All mankind, right now, is caught in the vortex of the swiftly accelerating crisis marking t h e utter destruction of this worlds man-built, Satan-inspired civilization. Through Jeremiah God says: A noise shall come even to the ends of the earth; for the Lord hath a controversy with the nations, he will plead with all flesh-how? R i g h t now t h e World Tomorrow program carries his peaceful pleading worldwide, but the world, except for scattered individuals, does not
194
Mystery of Israel
heed this kind of pleading. The next words tell HOW God is now about to plead: I . . .he will give them that are wicked to the sword, saith the Lord.. . . Behold, EVIL shall go forth from nation to nation, and a great whirlwind shall be raised up from the coasts of the earth (Jer. 25:31-32). God will use a United Europe __t o p u n i s h Britain-America. Then h e y i l l use the Communist___hordes-tLwipe o u e h e Romas-Eumpe. .We are entering a time of world trouble-utter WORLD chaos! There is war, strife, violence in Asia, Africa, South America, Central America, Ireland, the Middle East-as well as Europe and North America. The population explosion is a worldwide threat to human existence. Crime, violence, sickness, disease, inequality, poverty, filth, squalor, degeneration, suffering-these infest ALL nations! But, as salvation is given first to Israel, so is corrective punishment!
~~ ~~
- c - c _ _ -
/ -
Our Great Tribulation Notice Jeremiahs prophecy: For thus saith the Lord; We have heard a voice of trembling, of fear, and not of peace. Ask ye now, and see whether a man doth travail with child? wherefore do I see every man with his hands on his loins, as a woman in travail, and all faces are turned into paleness? Alas! for that day is great, so that none is like it: it is even the time of Jacobs TROUBLE.. . (Jer. 30:5-7). Remember-in passing on the birthright to the two sons of Joseph, Ephraim and Manasseh (Gen. 48:16), Jacob said, Let MY N A M E be named on them-on Ephraim and Manasseh-who today are Britain and America. This tells ON WHOM this most
195
terrible of national calamities is to fall-on Britain and America! But now when is it t o fall? Do not assume this is referring t o anything that did happen t o ancient Israel. Read right on-see WHEN this prophecy is t o be fulfilled! Continue in Jeremiah 30:7: . . . i t is even the time of JACOBS trouble; but he shall be saved out of it. (After he has learned his lesson IN it!) Continuing from RSV, And it shall come t o pass in that day, says the Lord of hosts, that I will break the YOKE from off their neck [yoke of slavery], and I will burst their bonds, and strangers shall no more make servants of them. But they shall serve the Lord their God and David their king, whom I will raise up for them. (David, a t the time of the RESURRECTION-at the very time of Christs COMING!) So the time is just prior to Christs COMINGcoming to liberate our peoples-even as Moses liberated ancient Israel from Egyptian slavery.
The apostles had asked Jesus privately WHEN his Second Coming would occur-and the END of this world and the beginning of the happy world tomorrow. Jesus said the SIGN by which we might know when this is very NEAR would be that his original gospel of the kingdom of God would be preached in all the world as a witness to all nations (Matt. 24:14). But what else-just before his coming?
196
Mystery of Israel
Jesus continued: For then shall be G R E A T TRIBULATION, as was not since the beginning of the such world to this time, no, nor ever shall be. And except those days should be shortened, there should no flesh be saved [alive]: but for the elects sake those days shall be shortened (Matt. 24:21-22). Here is described the greatest time of TROUBLETRIBULATION-in all history, or ever to be. Jeremiah described it as Jacobs trouble, so great that none is like it. Daniel described the same most severe trouble of all history. Speaking of a time now in our immediate future, Daniel foretold: And at that time shall Michael stand up, the great prince [archangel] which standeth for the children of thy people: and there shall be a time of TROUBLE, as never was since there was a nation such even to that same time (Dan. 12:l). The same most intense punishment on Britain and America. And WHEN? Continue, same verse, . . . and a t that time thy people shall be delivered [from this enslaved trouble], every one that shall be found written in the book. And many of them that sleep [are dead] in the dust of the earth shall awake [RESURRECTION], some to everlasting life.. . (verses 1-2). The time is just before the RESURRECTION of the just, at Christs coming. Christs Second Coming will end this worlds civilization and start the wonderful peaceful, happy world tomorrow.
197
198
the image of God, should shine unto them (I1 Cor. 4:3-4). Millions have read over this passage without grasping its real meaning.
real reason why Jesus Christ, the second Adam, founded the Church.
200
and the- --SpiriLof._God, .%unt,ilJep_us-Chrjst, Holy the second Adam, should conquer- and- replace- Satan -onearths throne. At his First Comjng,appzaring on earth -. -. ,as.the_human~Jesus,-Chr~ist_came,_npt_to_seizethe-throne, .4~ut~to~c.o~nguer~Satan,qualify~to~~replace~him~on the .thro.n_e_,ap_d_to_~m-th~kidnapped world-withhhis_ shed blood,Now, why the Church? Christ came also to call out selected and chosen ones from Satans world to turn from Satans way into the way of Gods law and to qualify to reign with Christ when he comes to replace Satan on the throne of the earth. Those called-into the Church were called not merely for salvation and eternal life, but to>ea&the-way-of-~.Gods_government-. and ;develop-the- divine character during this-mortallifeA $he Church age. Seven annual festivals were given t o Old. _____~.__---- __~e&amen~Jsraell.-and-were-ordaine-d-forever. Their true meaning had long remained a hidden mystery. They picture Gods plan of redemption-the divine plan by which God is reproducing himself. T-he Passover pictures>he_death-ofChSist-inqaymen_t_fr .t.he_pe_nalty_ofhuman.sinrepe_nted_ofi The_se_vnday_s .. of theFestiva1- of. -Unleavened -Bread picture the Churchcoming out of sin, even as Israel-came-out of Egypt. The Day of Pentecost, originally-Calle-d-Feast_ _ ~ of.-Firstfruits,-picture~th<Churchas-Che-first-to-be begotten _and-born~_as-children - of-God .during the Church age. The Feast of Trumpets pictures~-the Second -Coming_of-Christ_to_~ over- earths,throne take . a n L t - o - r x k d L nations. .The Day of Atonwxn-eai pictures the putting .away.. ~of-Satan. The-Feast-of .~ Tabernacles pictures the thousand-year reign under - ~- . the rule of Christ and. the born children of God. The
L~
L _ - -
L . . .
~~
201
.Final
Great_ Day-picturedthe final judgment which will ~ _ be covered in Chapter 7. Lets return now to the subject of this chapter, the Church.
202
treeoflifeatthe-foundation-of-the-world. The-Holy _Spirit and salvation were shut off from the world during- _ _ all . these years. __c But in view of the facts revealed by God Almighty in his Word, covered in the preceding chapters, all these suppositions are wrong. They only give vociferous testimony to the fact expressed in Revelation 12:9- that has been-de_ce&ed-b<Satanthe_devil, the whole world-Their minds have been blinded to the truth about Gods purpose for humanity as stated in I1 Corinthians 43-4. The existence of the Church, then, does indeed become a mystery to nearly everyone on the face of this earth. News concerning some church appears frequently in newspapers and on newscasts. People think of a church on some near corner, or perhaps of some denomination in the news, but the fact of its existence would not occur to the mind to be a mystery. But when we ask, why do churches exist, how did the Church as an institution come into being?-what is its reason or purpose for its existence?-does it make any difference whether, or to which church you belong?-then, indeed, it becomes a mystery. The average person has no answer. The facts of the Churchs origin and its purpose are revealed in that book of mystery-the Holy Bible. To make clear that mystery may well require more pages in this book than any other subject.
M y Personal Experience
I am reminded of my own personal experience, probably typical of many others. My parents were members of the Friends Church, commonly known as the Quakers. The family had been Quakers for many generations. I was taken to church from babyhood, taking it for granted as a normal part of life. I was in church every Sunday
203
because my parents took me. As a routine habit I continued until age 18. It never occurred to me to question why we should attend church or how the church came into existence, or what was its real meaning and purpose. I never went through the experience in those years of being converted. As I grew into the teens, I was told that I had a birthright membership in the church. I was led to take it for granted that I was an immortal soul and that when I died I would not really die, but rather pass away into heaven where I would have no responsibilities but only a life of idleness and ease in sublime glory forever a n d ever. B u t I was n o t religiously or doctrinally interested. I simply took churchgoing and a religious phase of life for granted. But I had no special or deep religious or spiritual interest, and by age 18 I started in the advertising business, lost all interest in religion or the things of God and gave up regular church attendance. I still believed in God-that is to say, I took the existence of God for granted since I had been taught of Gods existence from earliest memory. Then at age 25 I had met and married that one and only particular young woman. She was more seriously interested in the things of God. We began t o feel that we should join a church. My wifes ancestry had been part Quaker and part Methodist. There was no Quaker church in the neighborhood where we lived in a Chicago suburb. We joined a Methodist church because it was located within walking distance, we liked the personality of the minister, and we liked the membership socially. I think our experience was typical of millions of others. But it never occurred to me to ask or even wonder why we ought t o go to church, or why the institution of the church had ever come into being.
204
Like millions of others I assumed that the good people went to church and so ought we.
founded only one Church. Yet in the Western world today there are many different churches-Catholic, Protestant, independents. And within them many denominations, sects and divisions or congregations, each with its differing beliefs, teachings, rituals and programs. The Church started out as one Church. As it is recorded in I Corinthians 12 the Church consisted of many members, but only t h e one body-the one Church-of which Jesus Christ was the Head. At the outset of this chapter we are primarily concerned with four basic questions that constitute a mystery that needs to be revealed with understanding. 1) Who and what is Christ? Why did he appear on earth? 2) What is and why was the Church brought into existence? 3) What is the gospel the Church is commissioned to proclaim? 4) What is the history of the Church? Why is Christianity so different today than at its inception in the first century? Institutionally the CHURCH is thought of today as a religious organization, association or society. One-if good-is supposed to join the church of his choice. Of course there are the good guys and the had guys and the good go to church. But does it make any difference which church-which denomination? A Minister without a Pastorate
I am reminded of an incident of more than 50 years ago. I was still in Eugene, Oregon. An ex-minister came t o me who had just recently been married. His wife had money, but he was too proud to let her support him. He had not been employed in the ministry for some time hut now needed a job.
206
DO you know of any pulpit vacancies in Lane County? he asked. I want to support my wife, and she wants to remain here in Lane County. Well, yes, I replied. I do know of one vacancy, but that wouldnt help you because that is a Christian church, and you are a Methodist with different beliefs and practices. Oh, that wont make any difference, he assured me. Ill preach whatever doctrines they want me to preach. But does it really make any difference what we believe? Let the Word of God answer that question. The Church seems to be something concerned with worshiping with others. Supposedly it refers to the worship of God. But if GODis related to the Church, what is his relationship? How did the Church start? All this is a mystery to todays world. Back in the early part of 1927 when my intense Bible study was bringing me toward conversion, I asked myself such questions. I supposed questions of that sort never enter the average mind. In the New Testament Greek, the Church is called the ekklesia, a Greek word meaning called-outones-an assembly, a congregation, a gathering, a group. There is no sanctity to the word ekklesia. The name of the Church, however, used 1 2 times in the New Testament, is Church of God, which denotes that it is GODS Church-which NAME attaches sanctity. The Old Testament Church was the Congregation of Israel, a human man.
W h y Jesus Founded the Church The first place in the New Testament where the word church appears is Matthew 16:18, where, speaking to
207
Simon Peter, Jesus said, I will build my church. As noted above, the inspired Greek word for church was ekklesia, meaning called-out-ones. Stated in more clear English language, Jesus said I will call out of Satans world disciples, to grow into the altogether new and different world, which will be Gods kingdom. And in Ephesians 5:23 it is stated that Christ is the Head of the Church. So this we know. Whatever the Church is, i t belongs to GODand its name is the CHURCH GOD.Jesus Christ OF is its founder, and he its living HEAD. But if it is GODSChurch-if Jesus Christ founded it and today heads it-it is something IMPORTANT TO GOD, and therefore VITAL THAT WE COME TO UNDERSTAND! We must bear in mind what went before-what led up to it-to understand WHY the living Christ created it-WHAT it is, and where it fits into the divine PURPOSE being worked out here below.
and b) had been glorified after ascension to heaven (John 7:37-39). And that is something not even the theologians and church leaders of our day understand. It is, indeed, a mystery, which needs to be revealed and understood. Now let us understand clearly who and what is Christ. We have already seen in chapter 1that Christ, in the eternity before the world came into being, was the Logos who also was God, and as Jesus, was born as the Son of God. Now as the Son of God just what was Jesus? He was called the second Adam (I Cor. 15:45). Why should he be called the second Adam? The first Adam had the opportunity of taking of the tree of life, which meant God-life-obeying God and thereby replacing Satan on the throne of the earth. Jesus came to do just that, to qualify to replace Satan on that throne and to start the government of God on the earth through those called out from Satans world. He came also with a message from God called the gospel. The word gospel means good news. And actually, his gospel-the message sent by him from God-was the good news of the kingdom of God. And the kingdom of God, as we shall see, is to be the restoration of the government of God over the earth and the ousting of Satan from that throne. Jesus came also to build the Church. And he came to pay the ransom price for a kidnapped world and by that price-his death-to pay the penalty incurred by all humans for their sins.
Jesus -Earth Ruler and King Next, what nearly all Christians, including theologians, do not realize: Jesus was born to become a KING! On trial for his life before Pilate, Jesus was asked, Art thou a king then? And Jesus answered Thou
209
sayest that I am a king. To this end was I born, and for this cause came I into the world. . . (John 1837). Jesus also said (verse 36), My kingdom is not of this world . . . [else] would my servants fight-showing that this is Satans world. Jesus came to call people out of this world to be prepared to teach and rule under him when he becomes King and takes over the throne of the earth. Prior to the begettal and birth of Jesus, God had said t o his mother-to-be, Mary, by his angel: And, behold, thou shalt conceive in thy womb, and bring forth a son, and shalt call his name JESUS. shall be great, He and shall be called the Son of the Highest: and the Lord God shall give unto him the throne of his father David: and he shall reign over the house of Jacob for ever; and of his KINGDOM there shall be no end (Luke 1:31-33). His gospel was the good news of that kingdom-the kingdom of God. It is vital that we understand, a t this point, that Jesus, during his human life, was both God and man. In Isaiah 7:14, Mary, the mother of Jesus, was prophesied as the virgin who was going to bear a son. That Sons name, in this prophecy, was to be called Immanuel, which means God with us. In other words, Jesus was God as well as human man. He had no human father. God Almighty was his father who begat him by means of the Holy Spirit. But though Jesus was actually God with us, he was also human like all other humans. He was subject to being tempted just as all other humans are tempted. Although he was actually God in the human flesh, yet in his ministry he functioned as a human. Remember, he was the second Adam. It was necessary for him that he, as a human, reject the forbidden tree and accept the tree of life. It was necessary that he, as the first Adam might have done, choose t o rely
210
completely on God the Father. In fact, God was actually in Christ and Jesus obeyed the Father completely. He qualified to wrest the throne of the earth from Satan.
bound over in a bent position, tied to a post. He was beaten by whips made of leather thongs weighted down by pieces of lead, broken shards of bone and sharp jagged pieces of metal attached at intervals of four to five inches, along the leather thongs. They were designed to imbed themselves deeply into the flesh as the thongs wrapped themselves around the body. He was whipped until his flesh was torn open and even his ribs appeared. Scourging was intended to weaken the victims so they would die quickly on the stake of crucifixion. As foretold in Isaiah 5214: His visage was so marred more than any man, and his form more than the sons of men. This indescribable scourging was endured that believers might be healed from physical transgression, sicknesses or disease (Isa. 53:5; I Pet. 224). What a terrible price our own very Maker paid that we might, by believing, be healed. Yet nearly all professing believers totally ignore what their Savior provided for them, and instead of relying on him, put their faith in human doctors, drugs, medicines and knives. Jesus was so weakened by this terrible chastisement that he was unable to carry his cross, as he was required to do, but for a short distance. Another was appointed to carry it for him.
and then died. He did this because you and I have transgressed the law of God. He paid the supreme possible sacrifice for you and for me. One more supremely vital truth. The resurrection of Jesus from the dead was that of a human being and the only one that could make possible the resurrection of humans, once dead, to immortal life. Now another vital prophecy. In Isaiah 9:6-7: For unto us a child is born, unto us a son is given: and the government shall be upon his shoulder: and his name shall be called Wonderful, Counsellor, The mighty God, The everlasting Father, The Prince of Peace. Of the increase of his government and peace there shall be no end, upon the throne of David, and upon his kingdom, to order it, and to establish it with judgment and with justice from henceforth even for ever. The zeal of the Lord of hosts will perform this. Notice the government would be on his shoulder. Jesus is going to be King over all the earth. And one of the purposes of his coming was to announce that kingdom. Jesus gospel was not only good news-it was an announcement or good news proclamation of the coming kingdom of God. What a tragedy that a traditional Christianity has forsaken and lost that vital and glorious gospel message and substituted their own gospel about the person of Christ. Jesus was born as a human, to become a KING, ultimately to establish the KINGDOM OF GOD,ruling the whole earth with the GOVERNMENT OF GOD!But that RULE required more than the individual JESUS. king, The president, prime minister or ruler over every nation governs with and through a more or less vast organization of others who rule various phases and departments under him. Likewise, Christ must have an organized government with numerous others trained and qualified to rule under him. Jesus said, I will build
213
my church (Matt. 16:18). The Church was to consist of many to be called out of Satans world to be taught and trained for numerous governmental positions under Christ when he comes to rule over all the nations.
world merely for their salvation and entrance into his kingdom. Otherwise God would be a respecter of persons to have called the few of his Church a t this time, while refusing to call others to salvation. If God is opening salvation to the few in his Church only to give them salvation, while he excluded the preponderance of the world as a whole until later, then God certainly would be a respecter of persons, discriminating against the world as a whole. Jesus said plainly no man can come unto him except God the Father draws him (John 6:44). A professed Christianity believes precisely t h e opposite. T h i s false Christianity teaches that God is calling and trying to save everybody in this present time. If that were so, then Satan is certainly winning a great victory over God. For the overwhelming majority of mankind know little or nothing about Christ or salvation through him.
this fact (I1 Cor. 4:4). Satan has deceived the entire world, including a professing traditional Christianity (Rev. 12:9). Neither professing Christians nor their scholarly theologian leaders today comprehend t h e major PURPOSES for which Jesus Christ came!
W h y Jesus Came
Jesus did not come to save Satans world while Satan sits on the throne deceiving them. Jesus will save the world a t his Second Coming, when Satan shall be put away. Why, then, did Jesus come more than 1,900 years ago? Not to rule, not to reign over all nations, not to save the world while Satan still rules over them. His human birth was the arrival of the second Adam. He had come 1)t o qualify, where the first Adam failed, to replace the former archangel Lucifer on the THRONE OF THE EARTH, ruling with the GOVERNMENTOF&&d_Ggn. H e had come 2) t o announce t h e f u t u r e establishment of the KINGDOM OF GODand teach that prophetic good news (gospel) to his chosen future apostles. He had come 3) to take on himself, as our direct Creator, the penalty for our sins by his death on the cross-that we might share in that world. And he had come 4) to be resurrected from the dead by God, for making possible ETERNAL GOD-LIFE the people of God and after his Second Coming for all who are willing, of all humanity, who have ever lived on this earth. And he had come 5) to establish GODS CHURCH, be trained t o to rule under him.
GOD! still sits at that throne of POWER-though not He administering Gods government, but subtilely swaying all humanity to live under the precise opposite to the law of Gods government-that is, the ways of vanity, coveting, competition, strife and violence, instead of Gods way of outflowing love, cooperation, peace, happiness and joy. Immediately after the birth of the Christ-child, Satan sought, through the Roman-appointed King Herod, to physically slay the future KING (Matt. 2:13-15). But God warned Joseph and Mary to flee with the Christ-child into Egypt until King Herod was dead. When Jesus was about age 30, he was ready to begin choosing his apostles, and proclaiming and teaching them his message from God to man-his gospel. But first, it was imperative that he QUALIFY to replace Satan and set up the KINGDOM OF GOD,by overcoming the devil. This perhaps was the most important, momentous, decisive confrontation and battle ever fought in all time in the universe. It is described in detail in Matthew, chapter 4.
full days would be weakened to yield to almost any temptation for food. And the most vulnerable spiritual weakness is VANITY! IF, sneered Satan tantalizing-he used t h a t effective little word IF-IF thou be the Son of God-a normal human would have been insulted, indignant. He would have defiantly hurled back: What do you mean, IF I be the Son of God? Ill show you that I am the Son of God! But Satan in this first attack, said, IF thou be the Son of God, command that these stones be made bread. In other words, The Son of God can produce miracles. PROVE me you are the Son of God! You are desto perately hungry. Perform a miracle. Feed yourself by a miracle! But Jesus only answered by quoting and obeying the Word of God: It is written, Man shall not live by bread alone, but by every word that proceedeth out of the mouth of God. Satans first a n d most effective strike was parried. But Satan never gives up. He took Jesus into Jerusalem and sat him on a high pinnacle of the Temple. He continued t o QUESTION that Jesus was the Son of God. IF thou be the Son of God, cast thyself down: for it is written, He shall give his angels charge concerning thee: and in their hands they shall bear thee up, lest a t any time thou dash thy foot against a stone. Now Satan quoted Scripture. But he misapplied it, twisted its contextual meaning, just as Satan so frequently influences scholars to do. Jesus came back to him, It is written again, Thou shalt not tempt the Lord thy God. This is quoted from Deuteronomy 6:16 and refers t o tempting YHWH (Hebrew), who became Christ.
218
But still Satan did not give up. Next he took Jesus atop a high mountain, showing him all the kingdoms of the world and their glory. All these things will I give thee, if thou wilt fall down and worship me. Jesus did not deny that Satan was now over the nations of this world. This was a temptation for gaining immediate power. Satan well knew Jesus would inherit all these kingdoms more than 1,900 years later. But he tempted Jesus to take Satans word that he would turn them over and give Christ world power IMMEDIATELY. But Jesus decided it was time to END this titanic battle for the rulership over the earth. Jesus now snapped out an 0RDER-a COMMAND showing that he was MASTER over Satan! Get thee hence, Satan! he commanded with supreme AUTHORITY! Satan slunk away defeated. But Satan did not give up. Nor has he given up yet. He battles against Gods CHURCH tohay! still
Picture a human son of the wealthiest, most powerful man on earth. The tycoons son is his heir-to inherit his immense wealth. He has been allocated a sizable portion of it already while an heir. This young man feels deep affection for another young man. His friend has committed a crime, plunged into debt for millions of dollars, which he cannot pay. He is deeply repentant but unable to save himself from imprisonment for the theft. In compassion for his friend, the son pays the multimillion-dollar debt out of his own money. His guilty friends debt is PAID IN FULL. His guilt-his tremendous obligation-no longer hangs over him-he is freed from that obligation and its heavy penalties! All humanity had followed father Adam-had brought over it the supreme DEATH PENALTY. Before Jesus (the WORD), now the Son of GOD,could found his CHURCH, those called out of the world into that CHURCH must be freed from t h e supreme DEATH PENALTY, that they might inherit ETERNAL LIFE! so One of the purposes for which Jesus came as a human t o earth was t o P A Y THAT PENALTY-that supreme DEATH PENALTY-fOT those called into his Church not only, but ultimately to free ALL HUMANITY each in his due time! But since that DEATH PENALTY he would pay for sinning humanity would END his human life, paying i t was reserved as his final human act after all other purposes of his human life had been finished. Nevertheless this gives the reader a grasp of HOW GREAT is the Jesus who came to found the CHURCH OF GOD! Continually bear in mind that, although his earthly ministry began when he was barely 30 years old (in his HUMAN life) yet he was the EVER-LIVING-the ETERNAL220
who had ALWAYS existed. How GREAT was t h a t 30-year-old human life! And this Jesus, who had grown up in the town of Nazareth, had since human birth resisted and overcome SATAN-had rejected Satans self-centered way of GET, and in the final titanic confrontation had QUALIFIED to RESTORE the GOVERNMENT OF GODand to establish on earth the KINGDOM OF GOD, to rule that government! Where the first Adam had failed to do this, Jesus the second Adam succeeded.
NATION), Israel, were t o form the very FOUNDATION of Gods CHURCH. Jesus himself was t o be not only Founder but HEAD,and chief corner stone of the CHURCH (Eph. 2:19-21; 523).
his disciples to become the future apostles, while he preached this message to the public.
time cycles--1,900 years-before I kept my first Passover), Jesus went u p t o Jerusalem for t h e Passover. While there, a notable Pharisee named Nicodemus came to see Jesus secretly by night. He feared having fellow Pharisees know he had talked personally with Jesus. Nicodemus said, Rabbi, we know [we Pharisees know] that thou art a teacher come from God. The Pharisees KNEW JESUS THE MESSIAH! WAS They were familiar with Isaiah 7:14, Isaiah 9:6-7, Isaiah 53. The Pharisees KNEW Jesus was the prophesied Messiah. But they understood only one Messianic appearance. So they supposed he was planning to overthrow the Roman Empire then! Of course Jesus knew what they were thinking. So he launched immediately into the fact that the KINGDOM OF GOD,ruling all nations, could not be set up UNTIL the time of the NEW SPIRIT BIRTH-the time of the
RESURRECTION!
is old? can he enter the second time into his mothers womb and be born? Jesus now made the meaning PLAIN-but Nicodemus did not receive his PLAINNESS of speech, nor do theologians or religious leaders today. Verily, verily, replied Jesus, . . .except a man be born of water and of the Spirit, he cannot enter into the kingdom of God. That which is born of the flesh IS FLESH; and that which is born of the Spirit IS SPIRIT (emphasis mine-John 35-6). T h e Pharisees knew about wateLbaptism. They had used it for years in converting gentile proselytes to Judaism. They-knew of-- John the Baptists-baptism_a -- - _baptism of repentance-for the remission of sins (Mark 1:4). Jesus meaning should have been PLAIN to Nicodemus-that water baptism was an initiatory rite preparatory to the start of being BORN of the Spirit. Jesus made it doubly PLAIN when he said, That which i s born of the flesh IS flesh. That which is born of humans IS mortal HUMAN-composed of flesh and blood-composed of MATTER from the ground. That which is born of the Spirit IS spiRrr-no longer human but composed of SPIRIT, immortal! No longer composed of matter or flesh. Jesus explained even further. Marvel not that I said unto thee, Ye must be born again. Then he compared one born again to INVISIBLE WIND-invisible to human eyes. The wind blows where it wills, and you hear the sound of it, but you do not know whence it comes or whither it goes; so it is with every one who is born of the Spirit (John 38, RSV). But Nicodemus did not understand such plainness of speech, nor do religious leaders today! Our free booklet What Do You Mean--Born Again? should be read by every reader of this book.
225
To this representative of the Pharisees Jesus referred to the salvation or spiritual phase of the kingdom of God. That kingdom will NOT be composed of mortal humans! It is NOT composed of mortal flesh-and-blood persons who have accepted Christ and joined a church of their choice! Yet millions of church members are deceived about that today. T h e s e millions of church members d o n o t understand WHAT the Church IS, nor way-its PURPOSE-the REASON for it! Compare Jesus explanation to Nicodemus with the resurrection chapter of the Bible, I Corinthians 15: And so it is written, The first man Adam was made a living [mortal] soul; the last Adam was made a quickening spirit. Howbeit that was not first which is spiritual, but that which is natural; and afterward that which is spiritual. The first man is of the earth, earthy: the second man is the Lord from heaven. As is the earthy, such are they also that are earthy: and as is the heavenly, such are they also that are heavenly. And as we have borne the image of the earthy, we shall also bear the image of the heavenly. Now this I say, brethren, that flesh and blood cannot inherit the kingdom of God.. . (I Cor. 15:45-50). I repeat again and again, GOD IS REPRODUCING
HIMSELF!
The popular teaching in churches today is that THE CHURCH the kingdom of God. But flesh and blood is [mortal humans] cannot inherit the kingdom of God (I Cor. 15:50).
no part in their lives. Indeed God plays no part in their lives. God is not consciously in their world. Just people, material things and interests. Of course, far back in the subconscious recesses of many minds may lie t h e dormant supposition that God exists. But he does not seem REAL t o them. That means also that the average person has no conception of what he is, why he is, or of any purpose or meaning for his being alive. Yet the CHURCH, does exist. But, again, WHY? too, WHATis it, really? What PURPOSE does it serve? We have seen that there is indeed a PURPOSE being worked out here below. Winston Churchill stated that before the United States Congress. There is a REASON for the presence of humanity on the earth. And for the working out of that PURPOSE there is a MASTER PLAN. T h e CHURCH an important part of that plan. is Never lose sight of the setting that led up t o the raising up of the Church. Keep in mind WHO and WHAT God is-the divine creating family, now reproducing himself in man. Bear in mind further: In order for Christ t o RESTORE Gods government over the earth, he would need with and under him a qualified and organized personnel of GODBEINGS-all having rejected Satans false way and having proved their loyalty to the government and righteous ways of GOD! Gods CHURCH designed in his supreme master was plan to prepare that dedicated and organized personnel of GOD BEINGS. T h e Church, then, became Gods instrumentality for aiding him in bringing about the salvation to humanity. Remember God has set out a 7,000-year master plan for accomplishing his purpose. We have stated that his purpose is t o reproduce himself. But actually
227
reproducing himself means converting the world from sin into Gods righteousness. It means instilling within Gods potential children the perfect spiritual character of God. They would become finally born sons in the God family. And just as God has not created all at once, but in successive stages, so he is bringing salvation to the world in successive stages. T h e Church is a necessary instrumentality preparatory to, and in order to, bring salvation to humanity. Therefore, once again, let it be emphasized that the purpose of the Chur_chis-w& merely to give salvation to those called into the Chuck+--but to teach and train those predestined and calledinte- Church as insthe God-s MLuscbnbinging-the -world_t_o_~al~ation.
whole UNTIL Christ the second Adam should restore the government of God and unseat Satan from the throne of the earth. That fact is made clear by Jesus statement in John 6:44, applying to this Church age, that no person could come to him except the Father that sent him draws them. That is why repeatedly in the New Testament those in the Church are referred to as having been called or chosen. That is why the Church is called a chosen generation. That is whv predestination-is mentioned twicein theNew2estament-that the called were p r e d e s t i n a u to be called. Indeed, they have been drafted. They are not volunteers.
True Christians: Draftees-Not Volunteers It is only through Christ that sinning humanity may be
reconciled to God the Father. They must first come to Christ. But no person can come to Christ except God the Father selects and, through his Holy Spirit, draws them. That may come as an astonishing new truth, but the more you study the New Testament, and how this truth is constantly borne out throughout the New Testament, the more clear this will become to you. No wonder the Church and its purpose has been a mystery. Satan has blinded the minds of a deceived and counterfeit Christianity. Anyone who joins the church of his choice has not come into Gods true Church. One cannot just join the TRUE Church of God. One is first selected and drawn by God the Father through his Spirit, brought to a complete heartrending repentance, and changed in his total life-style, and has also not only believed in and accepted Jesus Christ as personal Savior, but also has believed Christ. Remember Christ is the Word of God. Jesus was the Word of God in Person. The Bible is the
229
same Word of God in writing. To believe Christ is t o believe what he says-in other words, to believe Gods Word the Holy Bible. So, once again, WHAT and WHY is the CHURCH? The Church is the called out (from this world) begotten children of God. It is the Body of Christ (I Cor. 1227; Eph. 1:23). It is the spiritual organism that shall be the Bride of Christ-after its resurrection to immortality. Then it shall be married to Christ! It is the spiritual TEMPLE to which Christ shall come at his second appearing (Eph. 221). The Church could not be actually founded UNTIL Jesus had ascended and been glorified (John 7:37-39). But in a sense God began calling out some to form the foundation of the Church with Abraham and the prophets of the Old Testament-even, perhaps, with Abel, Enoch and Noah (Eph. 2:20). And Jesus, immediately after qualifying by overcoming Satan, began calling out his future apostles. They were to form, with the prophets, the very FOUNDATION of the Church, under Christ who himself is the real foundation and HEADof the Church (I Cor. 3:ll; Eph. 5:23). The average person has no conception whatever of the tremendous, supreme supernatural achievement Almighty God has undertaken in REPRODUCING HIMSELFultimately into billions of spiritual GOD BEINGS! of the Or many-faceted stages of development necessitated in this pinnacle of all divine accomplishments!
Few UNDERSTAND this! God put it in my mind and heart when I was a child only 5 years old to desire-to literally craveUNDERSTANDING! Solomon desired wisdom and God gave him wisdom above all who ever lived. What, then, is the necessary prerequisite to A receiving UNDERSTANDING? good understanding have all they t h a t do his commandments (Ps. 111:lO). The one test commandment is the fourthkeeping Gods Sabbath. My conversion resulted from a struggle to resist that commandment! But when a merciful God conquered me-brought me to surrender to him on that point-he revealed also the necessity of observing his ANNUAL Sabbaths and festivals. These picture the seven major spiritual steps in the great master plan. (This truth is explained in our free booklet Pagan Holidays or Gods H o l y DaysWhich?) Through this and other revealed knowledge of the Holy Bible, God gave me UNDERSTANDING of the working out of his great PURPOSE! And also the necessary part of his CHURCH fulfillment of that in glorious purpose! After Adams rebellion, with Satan still on earths throne, only God could have known how gradually, cautiously, a step at a time, must be the procedure. Such righteous men as Abel, Enoch and Noah undoubtedly were used to play some part in the ultimate creation of the KINGDOM OF GOD. But the Eternal began laying the actual foundation of that ultimate GOD FAMILY through the patriarch Abraham. Isaac, Jacob and Joseph formed part of that prefoundation. Then through Moses, God raised up the nation Israel-Gods first Congregation or Church. That Old Covenant Church was given Gods government, but NOT his Holy Spirit! Israelites were not begotten to become
231
future GOD BEINGS. Yet ancient Israel fulfilled a necessary part in Gods supreme program. Nevertheless, during those years, God continued to call and prepare individual PROPHETS to become part of the FOUNDATION for his CHURCH.
the Church to be converted and changed to become kings and priests (Rev. 5:lO) under Jesus WHEN Jesus comes to save the world. Consequently, much of the truth was revealed to the Church, which was being trained to assist Christ in saving the world. But the time had not yet come to reveal these truths to the world. Yet this worlds churches are teaching doctrines diametrically contrary to this truth.
harvest. The very first portion of Gods spiritual harvest of humans finally t o be born of God-made GOD BEINGS-is THE CHURCH! Thats why even those who shall be born into the kingdom of God a t Christs return OF starting with ancient prophets are part of the CHURCH GOD.Even prophets of Old Testament times are part of (Eph. 2:19-21). the FOUNDATION OF THE CHURCH All-prophets, apostles and Church brethren in whom resides the Holy Spirit-shall be resurrected and/or changed to immortality at Christs coming in GLORY and POWER! Thus the WHOLE CHURCH constitutes the very FIRST of all humans who shall be finally BORN AGAIN into the kingdom of GOD.They shall be GODBEINGS! How DECEIVED (Rev. 12:9) have been all those who think they already have been born again. The reader should request our free booklet Just Whot Do You Mean-Born Again? Salvation Now Only for Minute Few Now before proceeding further, UNDERSTAND WHY only the minute FEW have so far been called to salvationWHY the world as a whole has been CUT OFF from God-WHY the world has not been yet judged-way neither saved nor lost! Unless or UNTIL a son of Adam could qualify where Adam failed-could overcome and conquer SATAN-could pay the penalty of human sin and ransom the world from Satan-none could restore GODS GOVERNMENT-none could be given eternal GOD-life! The supreme master plan for working out GODS PURPOSE-reproducing himself-called for the selfto existing WORD be born of human flesh as a son of Adam. But ALSO that plan called for him t o be born as the only begotten Son of GOD!
234
Mystery of t he Church
The Messiah, and he alone, would be able to overcome and conquer Satan-to QUALIFY to replace Satan ON THE THRONE OF THE EARTH! Only through him could the sons of Adam be reconciled to GOD,receive Gods Spirit, become GODS sons-become the GODBEINGS whom God should by have finally reproduced himself! What a superb incredible master plan for such a SUPREME PURPOSE! How GREAT IS THE ETERNAL WHO GOD
DESIGNED IT!
This wonderful plan of God therefore of necessity called for the &ns of Adam in general to be NOT YET JUDGED! God left them to their own devices-knowing full well they would willingly and willfully follow way. automatically Satans <GET But meanwhile they would not be finally judged, but reaping what they sowed. They would live this sinful life, die, and God would RESURRECT them in a special resurrection to JUDGMENT in the end of the 7,000 years of the master plan. Christ already having atoned for their sins-Satan having been removed-Christ and the kingdom of God having restored the government of God over the earth-then they could be CALLED t o repentance, t o reconciliation t o GOD,to becoming, on their then free choice, GODBEINGS! And THATS WHY God has kept the world as a whole CUT OFF from him, even as their progenitor Adam had cut off himself and his human family.
For, continues Paul, as ye [Christians] in times past have not believed God, yet have now obtained mercy through their unbelief: even so have these also now not believed, that through your mercy they also may obtain mercy. For GODhath concluded them all in unbelief, that he might have mercy UPON ALL! And at this point Paul shouted out in writing: 0 the depth of the riches both of the wisdom and knowledge of God! how unsearchable are his judgments, and his ways past finding out! (Rom. 11:25, 30-32). True, the apostle wrote the above concerning ISRAEL, and I have applied it to all uncalled humanity-but it is truly applicable. God called and prepared the Old Testament prophets. He has called and still calls and prepares the CHURCHo overcome Satan-whereas those now t blinded, uncalled and cut off from God have NOT had t o overcome Satan. WHY? WHY the CHURCH? That we may QUALIFY to rule WITH and UNDER CHRIST the kingdom of God-that we may prepare in the way for the ULTIMATE CALL AND SALVATION OF THE
WORLD!
At this point let me quote two passages from the direct word of Jesus, which apply ONLY to the CHURCH: To the CHURCH this twentieth century Jesus of says, TO him that overcometh will I grant to sit with me in my throne, even as I also overcame, and am set down with my Father in his throne (Rev. 3:21). Then again to the CHURCH Jesus says, He that overcometh, and keepeth my works unto the end, to him will I give power over the nations: and he shall rule them with a rod of iron. . . (Rev. 226-27). In that passage of Scripture Jesus showed plainly why some are called out of this world into the Church a t
236
this present time. Not because he is trying to save the world, and we are part of the world. Not just that we may be saved and make it into his kingdom, but, as Jesus also said in Revelation 5:10, to be kings and priests and reign with and under Christ when he sets his hand to bring salvation to the world.
I cannot repeat too emphatically that those being called into the Church now are not being called merely and only for salvation. Nevertheless, in order that they may be kings and priests, as actual God Beings aiding Christ in the salvation of the world, those in the Church themselves must be genuinely converted. I cannot make this truth too plain. I fear many, even in the Church, do not fully comprehend just what is a real conversion. Conversion takes place in the mind, and that faculty of mind we call. the heart. This could never be fully understood without an understanding of the actual makeup of the human mind, as explained in Chapter 3 of this work. It could never be understood, until the knowledge was revealed through the Bible, of the human spirit in man and the actual composition of the human mind. As the human mind differs from the animal brain by the addition of the human spirit, so the converted person differs from the unconverted person by the addition of the Holy Spirit. How much greater is the capacity and output of the human mind than that of the animal brain? The realization of that difference should make clear to us the vast difference between a converted mind being led by the Holy Spirit, and mind of the unconverted.
237
One does not receive the Holy Spirit until he has first of all repented. God grants repentance (Acts 11:M). The second condition to receiving the Holy Spirit is faith. That means not only believing in God and in Christ, b u t since Christ is t h e Word or Spokesman of the God family, it means believing what he says. Repentance means a change of mind. Godly sorrow is a much deeper sorrow than remorse. And godly sorrow leads to repentance. It involves not only heartfelt sorrow for past sins, but a total change of attitude, of mind and direction and purpose of life. Actually, repentance is more concerned with future conduct than the past. The blood of Christ has atoned for the past. Repentance is not penance. Nothing you can do can make up for past guilt. The blood of Christ has paid the price of past guilt. I t has washed the slate clean. A converted person is a person with a totally changed, or converted mind. A converted mind in which the very mind of God is joined with the human mind. As God says through the apostle Paul, Let this mind be in you, which was also in Christ Jesus (Phil. 2:5). The Holy Spirit is the spirit of a sound mind, which is a completely changed mind. It has made an about-face in its desires, purposes and intentions.
upon death, which so many believe is not really a death after all. God, in the Bible, teaches no such thing. God reveals that as in Adam all die, even so the same all in Christ shall be made alive by a resurrection from the dead. Meanwhile, God reveals the dead are totally unconscious. In ancient Israel God gave them knowledge of his law, but not his Spirit. Their minds were not converted or changed. They were still carnal. And the natural mind is hostile against God (Rom. 8:7). There was no conversion in ancient Israel-no salvation. The 37th chapter of Ezekiel reveals how those of ancient Israel will receive the Spirit of God, if willing, in the Great White Throne Judgment. One receiving and led by the Holy Spirit is a changed person. He has undergone a renewing of the mind. Until the knowledge of the human spirit in man was revealed, and that Gods Spirit can unite with human spirit, true salvation could not be fully understood. A Christian must grow and develop in grace, spiritual knowledge and godly character.
At this juncture let me explain further why the Church is called the firstfruits of Gods salvation. Far from being a discrimination against the overwhelming majority of the world not yet called to salvation, it is for the very purpose of calling the rest of the world to salvation. Once again let me remind you there is a definite order in sequence in Gods plan for saving the world-for reproducing himself. Jesus Christ is the first of the firstfruits. He is the firstborn of many brethren (I Cor. 1523; Rom. 899). The Church is being called to be changed, developed in character, and finally born at Christs Second Coming as
239
God Beings, to be kings and priests under Christ when he will set his hand to save the world. In a sense, then, the Church shall become co-saviors with Christ. Two things basically were required of Christ to save the world. First it was necessary for him, who was the Maker of us all, to die for all, thus paying the death penalty in our stead. No one could do this but Jesus Christ alone. But many have not realized that we are not saved by the blood of Christ. You will read in Romans 5:lO that we are reconciled to God the Father by the death of Christ, but we shall be saved by his life-by the resurrection. I am writing this particular passage on what the world calls Easter Sunday. Today, the churches and the evangelists have said much about the resurrection of Christ, but virtually nothing about the resurrection of all who shall be saved, and of the resurrection by which people may be saved. Jesus alone could make the sacrifice in payment of our past sins. But the world must look for salvation through his life after his resurrection. The Church i s the affianced Bride of Christ to be married to the Son of God on his return, after the resurrection of those in the Church. After we have attained t o the resurrection of the dead, as the wife of the Son of God, and members of the God family, we shall be not only heirs and coheirs with Christ, but in a sense, co-saviors. The family of God will grow. As kings and priests, the Church in the resurrection will be co-rulers under Christ in restoring the government of God over all nations. But we shall also be, as priests, co-saviors with him in saving the world.
called out of the world t o receive salvation during this Church age, while the rest of the world was left in spiritual darkness and deception? Before Jesus could qualify t o become our Savior and future King, i t was necessary for him, as the second Adam, to do what the first Adam failed to do-to overcome Satan and to choose the mind and government of God instead. If the Church is t o rule with and under him-if the Church is t o be priests as well as kings, aiding, under Christ in saving the world, it was also necessary that those in the Church must also qualify by resisting and overcoming Satan. That will not be required of the overwhelming majority of others when salvation comes to them. Salvation will not come to them until after Satan has been put away. So, you see, it was far from discriminating against the rest of the world, when Jesus said, No man can come to me, except the Father which hath sent me draw him (John 6:44). It was necessary that the Church be called at a time when each member had to turn from, resist and overcome Satan. Otherwise we of the Church could not qualify for the wonderful position of becoming kings and priests in the kingdom of God during the 1,000 years. This explains the WHY of the Church-its great
PURPOSE.
thus had one vote in election of officers, questions of Church doctrine and Church policy. A local congregation could consist of as few as five members. But division over Church organization and government began about 1930. By 1933 the Church was divided right down the middle. Two leaders organized a new Church, departing from its headquarters a t Stanberry, Missouri, setting up its new headquarters a t Salem, West Virginia. They adopted a system of organization that they erroneously called Bible organization. This new organization consisted of twelve men named as apostles-designated as the twelve. Seven men were appointed t o the office of deacon, the chairman of whom was the treasurer handling the money. Then there were the seventy-or seventy leading elders. This was copied from the ancient Sanhedrin in Judaism. However, there were not enough ordained ministers within the church to make up more than half of the seventy. The Roman Catholic Church is organized on the hierarchical system with the pope in supreme authority, a college of cardinals next in authority, a curia a t headquarters in the Vatican with archbishops, bishops and priests. The Presbyterian Church is organized with the presbyters or ministers in control. The Congregational Church delegates top authority to the congregationgovernment by the consent of the governed. And so it goes. The churches of this world of Satan are organized according to humanly devised patterns. But the Bible gives explicit directions in regard to Church government. Jesus Christ is the Head of the Church. Gods form of government is, indeed, hierarchical. God the Father is head over Christ-the sole Lawgiver and supreme authority.
242
Mystery of t he Church
God explains in I Corinthians 12 functions, offices, administrations and their officers as GODset them in his Church. Now concerning spiritual gifts, brethren, I would not have you ignorant.. . . Now there are diversities of gifts, but the same Spirit. And there are differences of administrations, but the same Lord. And there are diversities of operations, but it is the same God which worketh all in all. . . . But all these worketh that one and selfsame Spirit, dividing to every man severally as he will. For as the body is one, and hath many members, and all the members of that one body, being many, ARE ONE BODY: so also is Christ. For by one Spirit are we all baptized into one body, whether we [in the Church] be Jews or Gentiles, whether we be bond or free . . . (I Cor. 12:1, 4-6, 11-13).
Even in this world, in the United States the President does NOT MAKE THE LAWS. He administers the policies as functions authorized by Congress-enforces the laws made by Congress. Administrators are set in the Church merely to supervise, direct, execute the policies, procedures, doctrines assigned t o them from above. The ONE Church, undivided, is emphasized again in verse 2 0 But now are they many members, yet BUT ONE BODY-ONE UNDIVIDED CHURCH! Even GODis composed GOD, of more than one Personage, yet but the ONE GOD! remember, is the divine GOD FAMILY. Those in the Church are already begotten sons-begotten members of that GODFAMILY. But not yet BORN as GODBEINGS! Notice verse 25: That there should be no schism in the body; but that the members should have the same care one for another. To administer these many operations, God-not a vote of the members-hath set some in the church, first apostles, secondarily prophets, thirdly teachers. Or, as stated in more detail in Ephesians 4 1 1 (RSV): And his gifts were that some should be apostles, some prophets, some evangelists, some pastors and teachers. An apostle is one sent forth with Christs gospel message, including the supervision of proclaiming that message to the world by means and persons other than himself. Also an apostle was given supervision over all the local congregations or churches (I Cor. 16:l). The apostle Paul had oversight over the churches of the Gentile world (I1 Cor. 11:28). The prophets set in the foundation of the Church are those of the Old Testament, whose writings were used to form a considerable part of New Testament and gospel teaching and functioning. No prophets are
244
mentioned as having either administrative, executive or preaching functions in the New Testament Church. Evangelists were leading ministers, proclaiming the gospel to the public, even raising up local churches and having supervision over some churches under the apostle. Therefore an evangelist may hold executive functions under the apostle in the Church headquarters or work today. An evangelist is not necessarily stationary. Pastors are stationary pastors over a local church or contingent group of local churches. Then there were placed in the Church teachers-not necessarily preachers. Yet all ministers and teachers are called elders in other New Testament texts. Therefore, in Gods Church today there are both preaching and nonpreaching elders. Preaching elders pastor local churches. T h e n some elders, n o t preaching, are called local elders in the Church today.
temple in the Lord: in whom ye also are builded together for an habitation of God through the Spirit (Eph. 2:19-22). This scripture plainly reveals the temple to which the glorified world-ruling Christ shall come a t his soon Second Coming. There is no scripture foretelling the construction of a material temple in Jerusalem before Christs appearing. The 40th chapter of Ezekiel, however, describes the building of a temple after the return of Christ. The Church, then, is to grow into a HOLY TEMPLE-the spiritual TEMPLE t o which Christ shall come-even as he came to a material temple of stone and metals and wood the first time. Notice further: . . . the head, even Christ: from whom t h e whole body fitly joined togetherORGANIZED-and compacted by that which every joint supplieth, according to the effectual working in the measure of every part, maketh increase of the body.. . (Eph. 4:15-16). Compacted means knit together, compressed together, as closely together as if welded together. This shows ORGANIZED UNITY, HARMONY! It is commanded that those in the Church be so united that they all speak the same thing (I Cor. 1:lO). Old Testament Israel, the Church of the Old Testament, was also a nation in the world-though not OF the world as God organized it. Its GOVERNMENT was HIERARCHICAL. It was theocratic government-government from t h e t o p down-the very opposite of democracy. The CHURCH organized under theocratic governis ment, hierarchical in form. The members do not set officials in the Church. God sets EVEN THE LAY MEMBERS in the Church (I Cor. 12:18). Jesus said explicitly, No MAN CAN come t o me, except the Father which hath sent me draw him (John
246
6:44). The world, except for the specially called, is CUT OFF from God! We have just covered the truth t h a t GOD set officials to serve on the human level under Christ, in the Church. Members do not elect them. Yet in the churches of this world some believe in government by the entire congregation-democracy-and call themselves Congregational. Others have organized themselves into government by ministers or presbytery and call themselves Presbyterian. Some follow Luther and call themselves Lutheran. Some follow Wesley, who was strong on method, and call themselves Methodist. Some learned Gods truth about baptizing and call their church after the name of that one doctrine, Baptist. One wanted complete universal world dominion, and called itself Catholic, which means universal. What is the name of the Church Jesus founded?
In five passages where the true NAME of the Church appears, the entire body of Christ-the Church as a whole-is indicated. Thus when speaking of the entire Church, including all its individual members on earth, the name is The CHURCH GOD.Here are these five OF passages: 1) Acts 20:28: The admonition to the elders is to feed THE CHURCH OF GOD. 2) I Corinthians 10:32: Give none offence, neither to the Jews, nor to the Gentiles, nor to THE CHURCH OF GOD. 3) I Corinthians 11:22: I . . . Despise ye THE CHURCH OF GOD,and shame them that have not? 4) I Corinthians 15:9: Paul wrote: F o r . . . I persecuted THE CHURCH OF GOD. 5) Galatians 1:13: This verse repeats the one last given-I persecuted THE CHURCH OF GOD. Where one specific local congregation is mentioned, the true Church is called The Church of God, often in connection with the place or location. Here are four more passages: 6) I Corinthians 1:2: THE CHURCH OF GODwhich is at Corinth. 7) I1 Corinthians 1:l: THE CHURCH OF GODwhich is a t Corinth. 8) I Timothy 3 5 : In speaking of a local elder in a local congregation, Paul wrote Timothy: For if a man know not how to rule his own house, how shall he take care of THE CHURCH OF GOD? 9) I Timothy 3:15: I . . . behave thyself in the house of God, which is THE CHURCH OF THE LIVING GOD.Here it is the Church of the living God. In speaking of the local congregation collectively, not as one general body, but as the total of all local congregations, the Bible name is The CHURCHES OF
248
Traditional Christianity
But what about all the many organized churches labeled under the category Christianity-some with millions of members? They are all described in Revelation 17:5: Mystery, Babylon the great, the mother of harlots and abominations of the earth. Are they, then, evil? Not consciously or knowingly, necessarily. The world of humanity has been CUT OFF from God. Satan is still on earths throne, next in power to GOD himself! And the whole world is DECEIVED by Satan (Rev. 129).
249
Those deceived are not aware that they are deceived. If so they would not be deceived! They may be ever so sincere in believing they are right! Are they condemned? By no means! They are simply NOT YET JUDGED-neither condemned nor saved. Few indeed realize the magnitude of Satans power and the extent of his DECEPTION! It is SATAN is evil and diabolical. But he is an who INVISIBLE being and force-unseen and unrecognized by mortal humans. Satan is a great COUNTERFEITER! He appears as an angel of light (I1 Cor. 11:13-15). And he has his counterfeit CHURCHES! His ministers are deceived by him into believing they are ministers of righteousness and of Christ (I1 Cor. 11:15; Matt. 245). But I fear, lest by any means, as the serpent beguiled Eve through his subtilty, so your minds should be corrupted from the simplicity that is in Christ. For if he that cometh preacheth another Jesus, whom we have not preached, or if ye receive another spirit, which ye have not received, or another gospel, which ye have not accepted, ye might well bear with him.. . . For such are false apostles, deceitful workers, transforming themselves into the apostles of Christ. And no marvel; for Satan himself is transformed into an angel of light. Therefore i t is no great thing if his ministers also be transformed as the ministers of righteousness; whose end shall be according to their works (I1 Cor. 11:3-4, 13-15). Notice these deceived but false churches believe they are the true church, and their ministers are transformed as the ministers of righteousness-in other words, appear t o be the true ministers of Jesus Christ. And indeed, many of them may be entirely sincere, being themselves deceived. Yet they have neither known nor
250
preached Jesus true Gospel of THE KINGDOM OF GOD (Matt. 2414). Nor do they comprehend what is written OF in this book about the CHURCH GOD!
Partial Truth
Many Protestant denominations, and some personal ministries, quote certain scriptures, especially concerning Christian living, faith, love, etc., correctly. But they ignore numerous basic scriptures, cited in this book. Satan seems willing to let the deceived have parts of the truth. But these run afoul on pivotal truths. Usually they do not have the proper name, The Church of God. Neither do they know or proclaim the kingdom of God or what it is-that is to say, they do not have or proclaim the true gospel of Christ. They do not have Gods government headed by Jesus Christ, with apostles, evangelists, pastors and other elders. They do not know what salvation is. They do not understand Gods purpose or plan. One original Church, much persecuted and opposed, but still in existence, has these evidences proving it to be the original true Church. And even this Church, until after the year of 1933, had lost many of these vital truths. At least 18 basic and essential truths have been restored to the true Church since that year.
of GOD,cannot think spiritually-cannot know spiritual knowledge-cannot understand human problems, troubles, evils or purposes of human existence. But the CHURCH GODS is Church. And the things of GODare a mystery-not understandable t o the natural carnal mind. So people may have some kind of human idea of what and why the Church is, but it is not GODS concept. God has communicated to man in our day through his printed Word, the Holy Bible. But the real central meaning in the Bible is spiritual. And natural minds without Gods Spirit cannot think spiritually or comprehend spiritual knowledge. To make it still more a I repeat once again, the Bible is like a jigsaw MYSTERY, puzzle, made u p of thousands of parts t h a t , for understanding, must be put together precept upon precept; line upon line.. . here a little, and there a little (Isa. 28:9-10, 13). And it requires the addition of the Holy Spirit to the human mind to put this spiritual jigsaw puzzle properly together. Even then it requires time, diligence, patience. I have not been able to give this what and why of the Church to the reader all at once briefly. I want fully to reveal the MYSTERY! WHAT, then, IS THE CHURCH?
W h y Firstfruits
I t is that body God has specially called out of Satans world. It is a body called for a very special purpose-to be trained to become rulers and teachers when God does set his hand to convert the world. To be enabled to rule and teach the world with and under Christ. It is also necessary that they be first converted from human into actual God Beings, members of the divine God family. That explains why they are repeatedly called t h e first-fruits of Gods salvation (Eph. 1:ll; Rom. 11:16;
252
Rev. 14:4). The day of Pentecost was originally called the Feast of Firstfruits, picturing the Church being called and trained for their special mission prior to the time when God will open salvation to the world. Let it be clearly understood that the time has not yet come when God has opened the tree of life to Satans world. Rather than open the tree of life to Satans world, God has selected those predestined to be specially called that they might be prepared as kings and teachers, being actual God Beings under Christ when God does open the tree of life to the whole world. That will be the time when, as in Joel 2:28, God shall at last pour out his Spirit upon all flesh. The New Testament passage that incorrectly reads NOWis the day of salvation (I1 Cor. 6:2) is quoted from Isaiah 4 9 9 where it is a day of salvation, not the day of salvation. The Greek text also does not have the word the. It was inserted by translators who were deceived into believing this is the only day of salvation for everyone. The very truth that the Church is not called merely and only for salvation-not merely to make it into the kingdom as so many have expressed it-is plainly affirmed in the parables of the pounds and of the talents.
of the Church to an accounting. The one who has multiplied the portion of the Holy Spirit received (has grown and developed in grace and knowledge) by ten times over, shall be rewarded by being given rule over ten cities. He who qualified by spiritual growth and development only half as much shall reign over five cities as his reward. Remember we shall be rewarded according to our works or spiritual growth, but salvation is a free gift. But what of the person who thought he had it made into the kingdom without spiritual growth and development? He shall have taken away from him that first portion of the Holy Spirit-he shall lose the salvation he mistakenly thought he had. HE SHALL NOT MAKE IT INTO THE KINGDOM! He WAS NOT CALLED MERELY FOR SALVATION, BUT TO QUALIFY to rule and teach under Christ in the kingdom, when God does open salvation to all on earth. It is well to note that it will not be opening salvation to those in Satans world. It shall then be GODSworld-the world tomorrow. The parable of the talents (Matt. 25) emphasizes the same truth. Parable of the Sower Also the parable of the sower and the seed in Matthew 13:l-9. But Jesus disciples did not understand the parable. They questioned Jesus (verse lo), asking why he spoke to the multitudes in parables. To his disciples, called out of the world to a special commission, Jesus replied, It is given unto you to know the mysteries of the kingdom of heaven, but to them it is not given. Here is another example showing God is not now calling the world to understanding and salvation. Jesus spoke to the uncalled world in parables to hide the meaning (verse 13). He explained the parable to his called disciples (verses 18-23). Some who are called in this
254
Church age hear the Word of God when preached, but do not understand, and Satan catches away that which was sown in their hearts. Some receive the truth when preached with joy, but lack the depth of mind and character; when persecution comes, they are offended and turn away. Others hear and initially respond, but are so encumbered with earning a living and pleasures of the world they produce no fruit-like the one who received the one pound but did not grow in spiritual character and knowledge. But, of the others called out of the world and into Gods Church, some produced spiritual fruit 100 fold, some 60 and some 30. They are saved by Gods free grace, but in the next life in Gods kingdom, shall be rewarded or given positions of responsibility and power according to their works. That means according to fruit borne. And fruit borne means more than regular Bible reading, prayer, church attendance or volunteer church duties. It means the fruits of the Spirit as explained in Galatians 5:22-23-showing more love or outgoing concern toward others, growing in joy, which is happiness running over, in peace with your own family, with neighbors, with all others. Growing in patience, being more kind and gentle toward others, goodness and faith, as well as meekness and temperance. The CHURCH, then, is that body called out from Satans world being prepared to restore, with and under Christ, the GOVERNMENT of God. That shall be a time when Satan shall have been REMOVED. It shall be a time when all living shall be called to repentance and salvation with eternal life through the Holy Spirit of GOD!The CHURCH, immortal, shall be RULING with Christ-replacing the present rule of Satan! The CHURCH, then, is that body of called-out-ones, who at the resurrection shall form the FIRSTFRUITS of
255
Gods harvest. That harvest is the reaping of physical flesh-and-blood, matter-composed humans converted into divine immortal GODBEINGS-those in whom God actually has reproduced himself!
_-_
_c
administering_THE_cOVERNMENTOFGOD.
And THAT IS WHY God has placed HIS GOVERNMENT in his Church. That is WHY Gods Church government is theocratic instead of democratic. That is why God has set ranks of government in his Church, apostles, evangelists, pastors, elders, both preaching and nonpreaching, till we [in the Church] all come in the unity of the faith, and of the knowledge of the Son of God, unto a perfect man, unto the measure of the stature of the fulness of Christ (Eph. 413). It is not a matter of having made it into the kingdom upon being baptized, but a matter of spiritual growth and development in knowledge and in righteous character. That is WHY it is hierarchical in form-government from GODat the top on down, not from the bottom up. Otherwise those at the bottom would be ruling GOD! It is the SAME government by which Christ shall rule all nations beginning with the millennium!
256
And that is WHY Satan has subtilely influenced dissidents in Gods Church t o become resentful and bitter over Gods government-why some have gone out of the Church! The churches of this world-traditional Christianity-Do NOT speak of the government of GOD.They do not picture Jesus as coming world RULER. They do not preach Jesus as coming KING-but only as Savior. They overlook-reject-scriptures speaking of Christ as King and coming Ruler, and government rule in the kingdom of God. And that is t o say, they deliberately REJECT and OMIT the gospel MESSAGE of Christ in their teaching and preaching! They teach that one is already saved on receiving (GETTING) Christ! I repeat, the individual whom God calls and adds t o his Church is not, at initial conversion, remotely capable of being given POWER of rule over nations! He is called a babe in Christ. He has, if repentant and really converted in this preliminary human state, actually received a portion of the Holy Spirit of God. Indeed in Romans 8:16 we read: The Spirit itself beareth witness with our spirit, that we are the children of God. But we need to grow spiritually before we are qualified to rule .over cities and nations and teach those being converted. As the apostle Paul said to those in the first century Church who were not growing spiritually: That ye be not slothful, but followers of them who through faith and patience inherit the promises. For when God made promise to Abraham, because he could swear by no greater, he sware by himself, saying, Surely blessing I will bless thee, and multiplying I will multiply thee (Heb. 6:12-14). We are already, though yet unborn, the begotten children of God. By direct comparison the impregnated embryo or fetus in a mother-to-bes womb is already the
257
child of its parents, though not yet born. Therefore I remark, in passing, abortion is MURDER! But this brings us to a most important PURPOSE and FUNCTION of the Church! Beginning verse 22 of Galatians 4 is an allegory about the two covenants-the Covenant made with national Israel at Mount Sinai and the New Covenant to be made at Christs return. However, ministers in the Church are able ministers of the new testament (I1Cor. 3:6). The CHURCH a part of, and preliminary t o the is final making of, the NEWTESTAMENT. In this allegory of the two covenants, the Church is called THE MOTHER OF us ALL-that is, of those in the Church. So notice the direct comparison. God is reproducing himself through humans. He endowed us with power to reproduce ourselves. And human reproduction is the exact type of Gods SPIRITUAL REPRODUCTION!
zoa)-on entering an ovum, finds its way t o and joins with the nucleus. This imparts life-physical human life-to the ovum. But it is not yet a born human being. Human life has merely been begotten. For the first four months it is called an embryo. After that, until birth i t is called a fetus. This human life starts very small-the size of a tiny pin point-and the sperm that generates it is the smallest cell in a human body! Once begotten, i t must be fed and nourished by physical food from the ground, through the mother. From this physical nourishment it must grow, and grow and GROW-Until physically large enough to be born -after nine months. As it grows, the physical organs and characteristics gradually are formed. Soon a spinal column forms. A heart forms and begins to beat. Other internal organs form. Then, gradually, a body, a head, legs, arms. Finally hair begins t o grow on the head, fingernails and toenails develop-facial features gradually shape up. By nine months the average normal fetus has grown to a weight of approximately six t o nine pounds, and is ready t o be born. A human has to be BEGOTTEN by his human father. To be born again of the Spirit-of GOD-one must first be begotten by the SPIRITUAL FATHER-Almighty God.
very limited life span, of itself-compared to ETERNAL LIm-an average of some 70 years. But spiritual, divine immortal life may be imparted t o it by the entrance into it of the HOLY SPIRIT, which comes from the very Person of GOD Father. This divine Spirit of GOD the joins with the nucleus of the human ovum, which is the human spirit and mind, and imparts to us also the diuine nature (I1 Pet. 1 4 . Heretofore we have had only :) human, fleshly or carnal nature. As the human sperm cell is the very smallest of all human cells, even so, many newly begotten Christians start out with a very small measure of Gods Holy Spirit and character. Many may still be, at first, about 99.44 percent carnal! Apparently those in the Church of God at Corinth were (I Cor. 3:l-3). The apostle Paul said he still had to feed them on the spiritual milk-not yet adult spiritual food. They certainly were not yet
BORN AGAIN.
Now, as the physical male sperm finds its way to, and unites with the nucleus in the ovum, so Gods Spirit enters and combines with the human spirit and MIND! There is, as explained before, a spirit IN man. This human spirit has combined with the brain to form human MIND. Gods Spirit unites with, and witnesses with our spirit that we are, now, the children of GOD (Rom. 816). And Gods Holy Spirit, now combined with our human spirit in our MIND, imparts to our mind power to comprehend SPIRITUAL KNOWLEDGE (I Cor. 2:ll)-which the carnal mind cannot grasp. Now we have the presence of ETERNAL LIFEGod-life-through Gods Spirit. In like manner the human embryo was an actual human life as yet undeveloped. But we are not yet immortal spirit beings-not yet BORN of God-just as the human ovum was not yet born of its human parents-not yet
260
inheritors, and possessors, but physical HEIRS (Rom. 8:17).But IF Gods Holy Spirit dwells in us, God will, at the resurrection, quicken to immortality our mortal bodies BY his Spirit that dwelleth in us (Rom. 811; I Cor. 15:49-53). Now we see how the astonishing analogy continues! As yet we are not born divine beings. We are not yet composed of spirit, but of physical matter. The divine life has merely been begotten. This divine CHARACTER starts so very small it is doubtful if much of it is in evidence-except for the glow of that ecstasy of spiritual romance that we may radiate in that first love of conversion-spiritually speaking. But so far as spiritual KNOWLEDGE and developed spiritual CHARACTER goes, there is not much, as yet.
The Spiritual Embryo So now, once spiritually begotten, we are merely a spiritual embryo. Now we must be fed and nourished on SPIRITUAL food! Jesus said man shall not live by bread (physical food) alone, but by EVERY WORD OF GOD (spiritual food)! This we drink in from the Bible! But we drink in this spiritual knowledge and character, also, through personal, intimate, continuous contact with God through PRAYER, through Christian fellowship and with Gods children in his Church. And also by the continual teaching imparted by the Church. Now the physical embryo and fetus is fed physically through the mother. Gods CHURCH called is Jerusalem above which is the MOTHER OF us ALL (Gal.
426). Notice the exact parallel! The CHURCH the is spiritual MOTHER OF ITS MEMBERS. God has set his called and chosen ministers in his Church to FEED THE 261
FLocK-"for the perfecting of the saints, for the work of the ministry, for the edifying of the body [CHURCH] of Christ: TILL WE all come in the unity of the faith, and of the knowledge of the Son of God, unto a perfect man, unto the measure of the stature of the fulness of Christ" (Eph. 4:ll-13). It is the duty of Christ's TRUE ministers (and how scarce today) t o PROTECT the begotten but yet unborn saints from false doctrines, from false ministers. The HUMAN mother carries her unborn baby in that part of her body where she can best PROTECT it from physical harm; and that protection is part of her function, as well as to nourish the unborn child! Even so, the CHURCH, through Christ's ministers, instructs, teaches, counsels with, advises, and PROTECTS from spiritual harm the unborn members! What a WONDERFUL picture is human reproduction of spiritual
SALVATION!
Continue further! As the physical fetus must grow physically large enough to be born, so the begotten Christian must grow in grace, and in the knowledge of Christ (I1 Pet. 3:18)-must overcome, must develop in spiritual CHARACTER during this life, in order to be BORN into the kingdom of GOD! And as the physical fetus gradually, one by one, develops the physical organs, features and characteristics, even so the begotten Christian must gradually, continually, develop the SPIRITUAL character-love, faith, patience, gentleness, temperance. He (or she) must live by, and be a DOER of the Word of God. He must develop the divine CHARACTER!
Finally -Immortality!
Then in God's due time-though the person may die meanwhile-by a resurrection, or by instantaneous
262
BORN
to immortality at Christs coming, he shall be of God-into the KINGDOM OF GOD-because GOD is that kingdom! He is no longer material flesh from the ground, but composed of spirit, even as God is a Spirit (John 4:24). How WONDERFUL is the TRUTH OF GOD! Yet, by his dastardly deceptions Satan has DECEIVED THE WORLD-has blinded humanity to the fact that God I S this KINGDOM Jesus proclaimed-and that WE may be born as spiritual individuals-as part of that divine FAMILY-aS part of the GODKINGDOM! How precious is GODSTRUTH! God designed reproduction to picture his truth in physical manner and to KEEP us CONSTANTLY IN THE KNOWLEDGE OF HIS
CHANGE WONDERFUL PLAN OF SALVATION!
It is the function of the CHURCH-aS the spiritual of Christians in it-to develop holy, righteous and perfect godly CHARACTER in those God has called-those God has added to the Church. Remember, none CAN COME to Christ, except called and drawn by God the Father (John 6:44). Newly converted members are not brought to spiritual conversion by salesmanship of human evangelists-are not talked into being converted-are not emotionally high pressured by high-powered evangelistic oratory or fervor-or by emotion-packed altar calls in evangelistic crusades to the moanful strains of a choir singing, Just as I am, I come, I come. You cannot find that sort of MODERN OldFashioned Gospel crusading either taught or used to set us an example in the New Testament! Yet people today suppose falsely that is the way Christ intendedthe way Jesus initiated. Jesus DID NOT come on a soul-saving crusade! world. He to try to save at that time all those in SATANS
MOTHER
263
came to call out of Satans world a people predestinated and specially called and drawn by God. Jesus said it was impossible for others of SATANS WORLD to come to him for salvation unless specially called by God to become kings and teachers when Gods WORLD TOMORROW has replaced SATANS WORLD. NEVER did Jesus beg or plead with anyone to give ones heart to him. At Jacobs well in Samaria Jesus spoke to a woman about the Holy Spirit in terms of living water. The woman said to Jesus, Sir, give me this water, that I thirst not. Here was a direct request from an unconverted woman for salvation and the gift of the Holy Spirit. BUTJESUS ONLY TOLD HER OF HER SINS-OF WHAT SHE HAD TO REPENT OF! He did NOT say, Come to me, just as you are, in your sins. None CAN COME to Jesus except God the Father draws him! All have sinned. Sin is against GODthe Father. Sin must first be repented of-turned from! It is much more than remorse for guilt. It is a matter of being sufficiently SORRY t o TURN FROM the sin, overcome the sin. This reconciles one to God on faith the in Christ. It is GOD Father who adds to the Church such as he calls to be saved (Acts 247). It is GODwho sets members in the Church (I Cor. 1218)-not the emotional oratory of the evangelist in the emotional altar call! God sets individual members in his Church in order that his holy, righteous perfect CHARACTER may be developed in them. And WHY?To prepare them to become GODBEINGS the KINGDOM (family) OF GOD, in to GOVERN and RULE the whole earth with the government of God! But HOW does the CHURCH the spiritual MOTHER as of its members DEVELOP THAT SPIRITUAL CHARACTER? This brings us to the real PURPOSE of the Church.
264
WHY
one cannot
sheep-is a COMBINED administration and function of the Church. The individual lay member HAS HIS VITAL PART in proclaiming the GOOD NEWS (gospel) to the world. How? Not by going out and himself proclaiming Christs message to the neighborhood or to the world. That is done primarily by the apostles, to some extent by evangelists, and to even a lesser extent in local areas by local pastors. (The chief responsibility of local pastors is supervision of and preaching to the local church.) But the ENTIRE CHURCH OPERATION is one WHOLE, organized into various operations and administrations (I Cor. 12:5-6).
Peter and John sorely NEEDED this loyalty, backing and WERE ALL A TEAM the prayers of the lay members. THEY
TOGETHER!
Take a recent modern example. The office of the attorney general of Americas most populous state-California-had made a sudden, unexpected massive armed assault on the headquarters of the Worldwide Church of God a t Pasadena, California. They claimed, in violation of the U.S. Constitution, that all church property and assets belong to the State, and a court had secretly appointed a receiver to TAKE OVER, AND OPERATE the Church of RUN the living GOD! But when the receiver was about to enter with his staff and deputy sheriffs the Hall of Administration and other headquarters buildings, some 5,000 lay members, with children and babies, crowded these buildings in extended and continuous prayer services. The doors were locked. The armed officials did not quite dare to break down the doors and disturb these massive and orderly prayer services. After three days they gave up. The receiver, an ex-judge of a non-Christian faith, resigned. The civil lawsuit went on the back burner. And the OPERATION OF THE CHURCH CONTINUED! The higher appellate court later ruled that this lawsuit was without foundation and never should have been started. The author, Christs apostle, can say emphatically that the apostles, evangelists, pastors and elders could not carry on the work of God without the loyal backing and continual encouragement of the lay members. Neither can the individual lay member develop and build within him Gods holy, righteous and perfect CHARACTER without the operations of the apostle, evangelists, pastors and elders. All these various
267
MYSTERYOFTHEAGES
members GOD HAS SET in his Church are interdependent-mutually dependent on one another. They form a TEAM-an ORGANIZED SPIRITUAL ORGANISM-Utterly different from any secular and worldly organization! How, more specifically, does this mutual dependency operate?
to persevere in the direction and oversight in this great work! Specifically, HOW is Gods Church organized today-How does it operate in this modern late twentieth century? Christs gospel message-the kingdom of Godgoes out worldwide in dynamic POWER by radio, by television, and by the mass-circulation magazine, The Plain Truth. This unique magazine of more than seven million copies monthly, in seven languages, is full color, effectively and interestingly carrying Christs gospel. Then, sent free on request are millions of copies of attractive booklets and even full books. A campaign of dynamic full-page messages appeared as advertisements in leading newspapers, The New York Times, The Wall Street Journal, Los Angeles Times, Sun Francisco Chronicle, and other daily newspapers. Large space has been used in the London Times. Then to encourage local church members and the ministry, a 14-to-20-page mimeographed Pastor Generals Report is mailed from headquarters weekly to all ministers. Twice monthly a tabloid newspaper The Worldwide News goes out to all members. Monthly a handsome full-color magazine The Good News is sent to all lay members, ministers and near-member coworkers. And finally, Christs apostle sends out monthly a mimeographed Co-worker letter to all members and co-workers reporting on progress in the work, current activities and needs. And we must not overlook a very important department, the Bible Correspondence Course, sent free on enrollment to lay members, and the public, giving monthly lessons in-depth of basic subjects covered by the Bible. The authors personal travels to all parts of the
FAITH
269
world representing Christs message personally before kings, emperors, presidents, prime ministers and leaders under them in numerous nations perhaps ought to be mentioned. All this is a well-organized operation carrying out the PURPOSE of the Church, 1) proclaiming the coming kingdom of God t o the world and 2) feeding the flock. The loner-the individual Christian, who wants to climb up into the kingdom some other way than by CHRIST HIS WAY through his CHURCH-iS not and MANNER OF TRAINING, rule to being trained in CHRISTS and reign with Christ in his kingdom!
271
difference in this analogy. A human who goes out, or is put out of Gods Church, could, on repentance and renewed belief, be admitted back into the body again.
It must be repeated-they shall have their eyes opened to Gods TRUTH if still living after Christ comes if dead before then, and Satan is removed-or, resurrected and called to truth and salvation in the Great White Throne Judgment resurrection (Rev. 2011-12). Again, the reader is urged to read the free booklet Just What Do You Mean-Born Again? Yes, the whole world is DECEIVED. But praise GOD! Satan soon shall be removed from earth, eyes shall be opened to ASTONISHING TRUTH, and ultimately EVERYBODY who ever lived shall have been called to salvation and eternal life! But when called, each must make his own decision. Sorrowfully as I say it, some will not repent, believe, and be saved. This book emphatically is not teaching a universal salvation. Some are going to finally perish in the lake of fire. Meanwhile Gods GLORIOUS PURPOSE must be worked out here below according to Gods wonderful MASTER PLAN-a step at a time!
Teachings and Beliefs
Now we must summarize the teaching and beliefs of Gods true Church. This, naturally, is related directly to the purpose of the Church-to call out of Satans present world disciples (students, learners) to be trained to become kings and priests (teachers) in Gods world tomorrow when God will open the tree of life (salvation, immortality) to all flesh. But doctrinally, remember what the Church is called to help restore-the kingdom, government and character of God. What was taken away? Gods law, the foundation of his government and the very essence of Gods character and divine life.
273
In other words, the pivotal point is the SIN question. Sin is the transgression of Gods spiritual law (I John 3:4). Satan has deceived this worlds churches into the belief that Gods law was done away-that Jesus, rather than paying the price in human stead for transgressing the law, did away with it-nailing it to his cross. The expression used by Protestants nailing the law t o his cross can mean only one thing. This is Satans teaching that by being nailed to the cross, Christ abolished the law, making it possible for humans to sin with impunity. What actually was nailed to the cross was Christ our sin bearer, who took on himself our sins, paying the death penalty in our stead, so that we are freed from the ultimate penalty of sinning, not made free to sin with impunity. The very basic teaching, belief AND DOCTRINE OF Gods true Church therefore is based on the righteousness of and obedience to the law of God. That law is LOVE. But it is not human love. Human love cannot riseabove the level__ -human- ._- - _- -- must be ( - of . - self-centeredness. It - - -lithe love of GodLshed-_abroad_inawrhearts-hy-tke HolyJSpjritY (Rom. 5:5). Ancient Israel could not really obey Gods law-they could have kept it according to the strict letter of the law. But since love is the fulfilling of the law and they had only human self-centered love, they could not have kept the law according t o the spirit-because the Holy Spirit had not yet been given. This basic teaching includes, therefore, all the fruits of the Holy Spirit-love, joy, peace, patience, gentleness, goodness, faith, meekness, temperance, etc. The teachings of Gods true Church are simply those of living by every word of the Holy Bible. The first man, Adam, chose to decide for himself
274
right from wrong-to decide his own teachings, beliefs and ways of life. The world has followed that same course for 6,000 years. The Church is called out of the world t o live the way God, through the Bible, teaches.
these strangers, every man heard them [the 1201 speak in his own language. And they were all amazed and marvelled, saying to one another, Behold, are not all these which speak Galilaeans? And how hear we every man in our own tongue, wherein we were born? Now notice carefully. Every man-that is, each individual-heard them, the 120, all speaking in his own native language. The Greek heard the 120 speaking the Greek language. The Parthian heard the same 120 speaking in the Parthian language. The Mede heard the 120 speaking the language of the Medes. They understood what was being said. T h e y got t h e message! Today, in Pentecostal meetings one person may break out in a kind of gibberish that others in the meeting do not understand (I Cor. 1428). It says if one speaks in a foreign language there must be an interpreter so the others can understand. But if there be no interpreter, let him keep silence in the church; and let him speak to himself, and to God. In verse 33 it says God is not the author of confusion. In verse 19, God shows the relative unimportance of tongues by saying: Yet in the church I had rather speak five words with my understanding, that by my voice I might teach others also, than ten thousand words in an unknown tongue. When I speak to an audience in Japan or some other country, I always have an interpreter who will interpret into the language of that country, every few words, my message in their language. When I speak in this kind of tongues I speak with understanding, and the people get the message.
relation to the true meaning of the baptism of-or, more correctly, by-the Holy Spirit. Christ said through the apostle Paul that by one Spirit are we all baptized into the one body-the Church (I Cor. 12:13). The word baptize means immerse or plunge into. Pentecostal people have been deceived into thinking that one is what they called saved when one receives Jesus Christ as his personal Savior. They consider the baptism of the Holy Spirit evidenced by speaking in tongues as a subsequent imbuement of power. I have had a great deal of experience with these people. This baptism as they call it seems to loosen their tongues in what they call an imbuement with power, which, in practice, means power to speak emotionally, often braggingly. The above explanation will not change those already hooked on this deception, but hopefully it will prevent others from becoming misled by this counterfeit emotional spirituality. Todays customary gospel about Christ believes that simply believing on Christ, which is professing Christ as personal Savior, means that one is already saved. Yet Mark 7:7-9 shows that many even go so far as to worship Christ, and all in vain because they do not obey Gods commandments-especially the Sabbathbut follow the traditions of men by which Satan has deceived the whole world. In John 8:30-44 the Jews who believed on Christ but who did not believe Christ or keep his commandments were called, by Jesus, the children of their father the devil. In I John 2:4 it shows that he who claims to know Christ as Savior, but does not keep his commandments is a liar and the truth is not in him. On the original day of Pentecost, of these Jews from other countries, some three thousand were baptized
211
after a real repentance and belief in Christ and in his Word, on that same day. A day or two later, after Peter had healed the lifelong cripple at the gate of the Temple, 2,000 more were baptized. The new fledgling Church grew, not merely by addition, which God added to his Church, but by multiplication. But this phenomenal growth was not to continue long at such an amazing rate of growth. Remember, these in t h e Church were being specially called by God out of Satans world. Satan was sitting on the throne of this earth. He fought fiendishly to protect his reign and upset Gods purpose to redeem mankind. Satan had sought to kill the Christ-child. Satan tried desperately to tempt and disqualify Jesus at age 30. Satan did not give up, nor has he to this very day. He now sought t o destroy the Church and if he could not destroy it, at least counterfeit it and deceive his world into a false Christianity. At the very outset Satan moved on Jews to fight the Church by denying Jesus as the prophesied Messiah. At the first the Church was almost wholly Jewish. The unconverted Jews fought to retain the physical rituals and animal sacrifices of the law of Moses. Very soon, while the membership in Gods Church was being multiplied (Acts 6:1), there was a great persecution against the Church (Acts 8:l). Members were all scattered abroad throughout Judea a n d Samaria, except the apostles.
from Christs truth gained momentum, much of the Church was turning to a different and counterfeit gospel, proclaiming Christ as Savior, but omitting entirely that sin is the transgression of Gods spiritual law, and the good news of the kingdom of God, removal of Satan, and restoration of the government of God over the earth and the final opening of salvation to all of humanity, who, when judged, would repent, believe and receive eternal life as sons of God-as actual God beings. The apostle Paul wrote in I1 Corinthians 11:3: But I fear, lest by any means, as the serpent beguiled Eve through his subtilty, so your minds [those in the early Church] should be corrupted from the simplicity that is in Christ. For if he that cometh preacheth another Jesus, whom we have not preached, or if ye receive another spirit, which ye have not received, or another gospel, which ye have not accepted, ye might well bear with him. Then Paul goes on and describes the false preachers as stated previously, that were coming in and changing the gospel of Christ right a t that time. Then we turn next to Galatians 1:6-7. Paul wrote: I marvel that ye are so soon removed from him that called you [you had to be called t o become a member of the Church-no one can come to Christ, except those that are called] into the grace of Christ unto another gospel: which is not another; but there be some that trouble you, and would pervert the gospel of Christ. The gospel of Christ was the message about the coming kingdom of God. They were already turning to a different gospel.
Counterfeit Called Christianity Already the curtain was rung down on the history of the true Church. You read of it in the book of Acts, but it doesnt go much beyond that. But the curtain seems t o
279
lift, and we begin to get a little bit of the history in about A.D. 150. There we see a church calling itself Christian, .but its a totally different church, as different as night is from day, down from up, or black from white. But it called itself Christian. Now we quote from a book of history, The Decline and Fall of the Romun Empire, Volume I and chapter 15: The scanty and suspicious materials on ecclesiastical history seldom enable us to dispel the dark cloud that hangs over the first age of the Church. I have often called it the lost century, because the history of that Church was lost at that time. Scholars and church historians recognize that events in the early Christian Church between A.D. 50 and 150 can only be seen in vague outline-as if obscured by a thick mist. The noted English scholar Samuel G. Green in A Handbook of Church History wrote: The thirty years which followed the close of the New Testament Canon and the destruction of Jerusalem are in truth the most obscure in the history of the Church. When we emerge in the second century we are, to a great extent, in a changed world. In Lectures on Ecclesiastical History William Fitzgerald wrote: Over this period of transition, which immediately succeeds upon the era properly called apostolic, great obscurity hangs.. . . In The Course of Christian History William J. McGlothlin wrote: But Christianity itself had been in [the] process of transformation as it progressed and at the close of the period was in many respects quite different from the apostolic Christianity. In History of the Christian Church Philip Schaff wrote: The remaining thirty years of the first century are involved in mysterious darkness, illuminated only by
280
the writings of John, This is a period of church history about which we know least and would like to know most. But if we look closely through this mist, we can begin to see what was happening. The world in which Christ founded his Church was the world of the Roman Empire-the greatest and most powerful empire that had ever existed. It stretched from Britain to the far reaches of modern-day Turkey, encompassing peoples from many different backgrounds and cultures under one system of government. Romes ruling hand was firm but the subject peoples enjoyed considerable freedom, within the compass of Roman law. Providing all citizens and conquered peoples paid due homage to the Roman emperor, they were also allowed to practice their religious beliefs and worship the gods of their ancestors. After the day of Pentecost, the apostles began to follow Christs instruction to go to all the world preaching the gospel of the kingdom. Once Christianity spread from Judea to the gentile lands to the north it began to encounter those who practiced the pagan religions of Babylon, Persia and Greece. The apostles came in contact with Simon Magus, a self-proclaimed leader in a cult that was deeply rooted in the mystery religion of ancient Babylon. Simon Magus plot to buy himself a position of influence in the early Church was foiled by Peter (Acts 8). But other false teachers soon followed. In his early epistles, Paul warned the fledgling churches of Greece and Galatia that they were in danger of turning aside after another gospel-a false concept of Christ and his message. The gospel of Christ was being diluted as false
281
ministers with their teaching, heavily influenced by the beliefs of Babylon and Persia, steadily infiltrated the congregations. As the first century wore on, the original apostles encouraged the members to stay faithful. Jude, the brother of Jesus, urges the membership to strive for the faith that was once delivered (Jude 3). The apostle John warns the brethren t o have nothing to do with those who are bringing in false doctrines (I1 John 10). Many who called themselves Christian had not been truly converted. But throughout this period, all who called themselves Christian suffered greatly from the Roman authorities, because they refused t o worship the emperor. The mad Nero in A.D. 64 blamed the burning of Rome on the Christians and persecuted them savagely. Thousands suffered martyrdom. Shortly afterward, the Jews of Palestine rose in rebellion against the Roman authorities. The rebellion was suppressed and Jerusalem destroyed in A.D. 70. A small number of true Christians in Jerusalem fled over the mountains to the safety of Pella.
Seven Church Eras The book of Revelation records seven messages to seven churches that existed in Asia Minor toward the end of the first century A.D. These churches-Ephesus, Smyrna, Pergamos, Thyatira, Sardis, Philadelphia and Laodicea-were located along one of the mail routes of the old Roman Empire. Riders would follow the route-carrying messages from town to town. The messages to the seven churches have words of
282
both encouragement and correction and they clearly show the dominant characteristics of each of t h e
nesses and its own special trials and problems. Just as a message could pass along the mail route from Ephesus t o Laodicea, so would the truth of God be passed from era to era. It was like a relay race-in which the baton is passed from runner to runner, each one doing his part, until the finish line is reached. Some time during the early decades of the second century, the baton was passed from the Ephesian era t o the people that God had called to the Smyrna era of his Church. Powerless, often persecuted, and rejected as heretics, the world lost sight of them. Instead, there emerged from the lost century a church t h a t was steadily growing in popularity but growing further away from the gospel that Jesus taught. Persecution continued a t various times under the Romans until the fourth century, when Constantine recognized the degenerate Church of that period as an official religion of the empire. But the Church that he recognized was by now very different from the Church that Jesus founded. The doctrines and teachings that he had taught his apostles were now buried amid the trappings, ceremonies,
283
mysteries and rituals of a church that called itself by the name of Christ. It was essentially the Babylonian Mystery religion, now being called Christian, accepting the doctrine of grace but turning it into license. In other words, it was the old pagan Babylonian Mystery religion wearing a new cloak Christianity. Once Constantine recognized them, this Church threw renewed energy into taking its message to the world. Teachers and preachers went to all parts of the Roman Empire with a message a b o u t Christ. Thousands-maybe millions-heard this gospel and believed i t , B u t i t was not t h e gospel Christ preached-his prophetic message of the coming kingdom of God.
shows that there were true Christians observing the Sabbath. The small remnant of Christians of the Smyrna era fled once more-to seek the religious freedom they needed to practice their beliefs. They left few records. Occasionally they appear as a footnote of history, rejected as heretics, ridiculed, and hounded by their enemies. B u t their strongest testimony comes from Jesus himself, in his words of encouragement to the Church that was at Smyrna. I know your works, tribulation, and poverty.. . . Do not fear any of those things which you are about to suffer. . . . Be faithful until death, and I will give you the crown of life (Rev. 2:9-10, Revised Authorized Version). And so the baton passed from the Smyrna Christians to those of the Pergamos era. These had been called to carry the truth through one of historys most difficult periods-the Dark Ages. The power and influence of the great universal church spread far and wide, driving those who clung to the truth of God ever further into the wilderness. But they were never far from threat of persecution and martyrdom. And so very few of the Pergamos Christians remained faithful. One thousand years after Jesus had founded his Church, the exhausted remnant of the Pergamos era handed over the baton. The Thyatiran era got off to a vigorous start, preaching repentance throughout the Alpine Valleys of Southern France and Northern Italy. Many heard and were converted. The religious authorities quickly reacted to this challenge. 285
Leaders of the true Church were arrested. Some were martyred. After the death of its first leaders, the Church went into a temporary decline-but emerged once more under the dynamic leadership of Peter Waldo. For several years in the 12th century, these Waldensians flourished in the Alpine Valleys, preaching what truth they had. Booklets and articles were written and copied by hand. This was still before the days of printing. As Jesus prophesied of the Thyatiran era, they had faith and they worked hard. Their latter works were greater than the first. But once again, persecution followed, as the full force of the Inquisition was felt in the peaceful valleys that had once provided a safe haven for the work of God. Many that remained began to adopt the customs and traditions of the world around them. Europe now had many scattered groups of people calling themselves Christians. Meanwhile, the world was changing. Printing had been invented-and knowledge began to be increased. The Protestant Reformation broke the monopoly of the Church of Rome. As religious wars swept across the European continent during the Middle Ages, many refugees fled to the relative safety and tolerance of England. Among them were members of the true Church. They brought with them their doctrines and beliefs, especially the knowledge of the Sabbath. The strict Sunday-observing Puritans resisted, but in spite of a rising tide of opposition, in the early 17th century, there were several small Sabbath-keeping congregations in England. Jesus was raising up the fifth era of his Church-Sardis.
286
Protestant England became increasingly intolerant of dissenters, including Sabbath keepers. The true Church in England withered. But across the ocean, men were beginning to discover a New World. Stephen Mumford, a member cf a Sabbath-keeping church in London, left England for Newport, Rhode Island, in 1664. Rhode Island was the smallest of the American colonies, and had been founded by Roger Williams, a Baptist fleeing persecution from the Puritans of Massachusetts. Rhode Island was the first place in the world to guarantee freedom of religion as a basic tenet of its constitution. Finding none who kept the Sabbath, Mumford and his wife began to fellowship with the Baptist church in Newport. He did not proselytize, but quietly maintained his own belief. Several members of the Sunday-keeping congregation became convinced that they, too, should observe the Sabbath. They became the first Sabbath-keeping congregation in America. At first they met in private homes. In the historical museum a t Newport, their record book is preservedcontaining names-their contributions-even records of their ordination services. Also preserved is the simple, but elegant, meeting hall that they built in Newport in the early years of the 18th century. Others joined them in their belief, as God began to call more to his work in the New World. A second congregation was established at Hopkinton. This soon became a thriving church of several hundred. A bridge today marks the spot where their meeting house once stood. Several thousand were baptized here on the banks of the Pawkatuk River. Then spiritual decline set in.
287
By the mid-lBOOs, vigorous new Sabbath-keeping congregations, raised up as a result of the preaching of William Miller, 1831-1849, could be found throughout the American Midwest. A t Battle Creek, Michigan, in 1860, many thousands were persuaded t o accept the beliefs of the followers of Ellen G. White. They departed from the true name-the Church of God. Instead of the true gospel, the kingdom of God, they substituted doctrines of Ellen G. White, called the shut-door policy, the investigative judgment, a 2,300 day doctrine and the spirit of prophecy, identifying Mrs. White as the churchs prophet who actually set the churchs doctrine. They adopted the name Seventh-day Adventists, by which name they are known to this day. But those who remained of the true Church of God refused to accept these teachings and doctrines and restored certain truths that had fallen into neglect in the previous century. They moved their headquarters to Marion, Iowa, and then to Stanberry, Missouri. A magazine, The Bible Advocate, was published. Their efforts bore some fruit-small congregations sprang up across the nation. And so it was that some time in the 19th century, a small congregation of the true Church of God was established in the peaceful Willamette Valley in Oregon. They were farmers, without formal education. They lacked trained ministers to teach and guide them. But they had the name, Church of God, and they faithfully kept the Sabbath day. Gods Church had come a long way across the turbulent centuries since the day of Pentecost.
288
It was weak, and lacked influence. Years of persecution and compromise had taken their toll. Much truth had been lost. But they had stayed the course. In the Willamette Valley, they waited. It was nearly time for the baton to change again-into the hands of those God would call t o do his end-time work.
It may apply to an actual spirit-composed angel that has been assigned as an overall agent or helper of this particular era of the Church. Or it may also apply to the human messenger or agent God has raised up to lead this era of his Church. At the same time another principle of duality may apply to verses 7-13. It may apply to the Church of this era as a whole, and also it could apply to the human leader God had raised up to this era of his Church. Continue with verse 8: I know thy works: behold, I have set before thee an open door, and no man can shut it: for thou hast a little strength, and hast kept my word, and hast not denied my name. This era of the Church was to produce fruit. To this era-or to its human leader-God had set before it an open door. It is recorded in I1 Corinthians 2:12 and also Acts 14:27 how Christ opened the door for Paul to go into other countries to preach the gospel. This Church and/or its leader had but little strength. Neither were of great and powerful stature in Satans world but those of this era were faithful to the Word of God. Though much of the original gospel truth, imparted to the original apostles by Jesus in person, had been lost, it was restored through the Bible to this era of Gods Church who were faithful in keeping it. It is revealed in Malachi 3:l-5 and 4:5-6 that God would raise up one in the power and spirit of Elijah, shortly prior to the Second Coming of Christ. In Matthew 17:11 Jesus said, even after John the Baptist had completed his mission, that this prophesied Elijah truly shall first come, and restore all things. Although it is plainly revealed that John the Baptist had come in the power and spirit of Elijah, he did not restore anything. The human leader to be raised up somewhat shortly prior to Christs Second Coming was to prepare
290
the way-prepare the Church-for Christs coming, and restore the tr u th that had been lost through the preceding eras of the Church. Also a door was to be opened for this leader and/or the Philadelphia era of the Church to fulfill Matthew 24:14: And this gospel of the kingdom shall be preached in all the world for a witness unto all nations; and then shall the end come. It was to be a t a time when, for the first time in the history of mankind, the weapons of mass destruction were produced that could erase all humanity from the earth (Matt. 24:21-22). This also was to occur just before the Second Coming of Christ (verses 29-30). These prophecies have now definitely been fulfilled. The true gospel has been restored and has now gone in power into every nation on the face of the earth. The Church has taken on a new Spirit-empowered life. All the technological advances and facilities are being employed. First radio was used, beginning on one of the smallest-powered stations in Eugene, Oregon. Then the printing press. This started with an old secondhand Neostyle, ancestor to the mimeograph. In due time the printing press was used. The advent of television came in 1945-immediately after the end of World War 11. The Church began using television in the summer of 1955. The true gospel, for the first time in 1,900 years, has finally been proclaimed and published into all nations of the earth. The Church has grown. For the first 25 years it grew at an average rate of 30 percent per year. The first apostles would be astonished to see the size and scope of the work now. T h e means of communications, the technology and t he modern
291
resources that God has given to his end-time work would indeed be strange to those men who first received the commission to take the gospel to the world nearly 2,000 years ago. But some things would not be strange-the Sabbath and Holy Days, the name, the Church of God, and the gospel of the kingdom-these they would recognize-handed down through the ages from the time of Christ to the time of the end.
292
gospel OF Christ. The gospel OF Christ was the gospel Christ proclaimed. Jesus was a Messenger sent from God with a message, and that message was THE KINGDOM OF GOD. Christs message was Christs gospel-the gospel OF Christ. It had not been proclaimed to the world until the first week in 1953, when for the first time in about 1,900 years-a century of time cycles-it went out on the worlds most powerful radio station, Radio Luxembourg in Europe. It seems that today all churches have lost the gospel of Jesus Christ. They preach primarily their gospel ABOUT Jesus Christ. Jesus Christ came preaching the gospel of the kingdom of God. Yet few preach about the kingdom of God today, for they have lost all knowledge of what it is! But does any, except Gods true Church, proclaim the true gospel of the kingdom of God today? A prominent evangelist said to a worldwide radio audience that the gospel of the kingdom of God is not for us today. Some denominations proclaim a gospel of grace, some what they call a gospel of salvation; most a gospel about Christ; some a social gospel; some the Science of Mind or Religious Science.
places uses the terms king and kingdom interchangeably, that is, the king is, or represents, the kingdom he rules. Not one is right! Could anything seem more incredible? Yes, to the mind reared in this worlds concepts, one thing is, indeed, still more incredible! And that is the PLAIN TRUTH about what the kingdom of God really is! The truth is not merely surprising-it is shocking -staggering! It is a Great Mystery! Yet it is truly GOOD NEWS-the most glorious GOOD NEWS ever to enter human consciousness!
CHRISTS Gospel
What is the one and only gospel of Jesus Christ? THE WORLD DOES NOT KNOW! It has not been preached for 19 centuries, strange as that may seem. Look into your BIBLE. Look a t it from the very beginning! The beginning of the gospel of Jesus Christ youll read in Mark 1:l. Now after that John was put in prison, Jesus came into Galilee, preaching the GOSPEL OF THE KINGDOM OF GOD,and saying, The time is fulfilled, and the kingdom of God is a t hand: repent ye, and believe the gospel (Mark 1:14-15). I t is necessary to believe that GOSPEL to be saved! And how can you believe it, unless you know what it is? And for 1,900 years, the world did not know. That gospel was suppressed and replaced by mans gospel about Christ. Jesus went everywhere preaching the GOOD NEWS of the KINGDOM OF GOD.He taught in parables about the KINGDOM OF GOD.He sent out seventy men preaching, and commanded them to preach THE KINGDOM OF GOD (Luke 10:9). He sent the apostles, on whom the Church of God was founded, to preach only THE KINGDOM OF GOD
295
(Luke 9:l-2). After the resurrection, before ascending to heaven, Jesus taught his disciples about the kingdom of God (Acts 1:3). Isnt i t amazing t h a t the world has LOST the knowledge of what it is? The apostle Paul preached THE KINGDOM OF GOD (Acts 19:8; 20:25; 28:23,31). And God Almighty, through Paul, pronounced a double curse on man or angel that would DARE preach any other gospel! (Gal. 1:8-9.) Why, then, do so many DARE to preach so many other gospels? The good news of THE KINGDOM OF GODis something you must understand, and BELIEVE, in order to be saved! Jesus Christ said so! YOUhad better be finding out what it is! That gospel-the kingdom of God-is the subject of this chapter. It follows the chapter on the mystery of the Church, because the kingdom of God follows the Church. The purpose of the Church, remember, is to prepare called-out-ones to teach and to rule in the kingdom of God.
Daniel Knew!
Havent you heard men speak of the kingdom of God something like this: By Christians everywhere working together to bring about world peace, tolerance and brotherly love, the kingdom of God may a t last be established in the hearts of men. Because they rejected Christs gospel 1,900 years ago, the world had to supplant something else in its place. They had to invent a counterfeit! So we have heard the kingdom of God spoken of as merely a pretty platitude-a nice sentiment in human hearts-reducing it to an ethereal, unreal NOTHING! Others have misrepresented that the CHURCH is the kingdom, Others confuse it with the millennium. Still others have, earlier
296
in our century, claimed the British Empire is the kingdom of God. But no one makes that claim any longer. How DECEIVED CAN THIS WORLD GET? The prophet Daniel, who lived 600 years before Christ, knew that the kingdom of God was a real kingdom-a government ruling over literal PEOPLE on the earth. Jesus Christ brought additional knowledge about it that the prophet Daniel might not have known. Still, Daniel knew there was going to be a real, literal kingdom of God on the earth. Daniel was one of four extraordinary, intelligent and brilliant Jewish lads in the Judean captivity. These four men were stationed in t h e palace of King Nebuchadnezzar of the Chaldean Empire, in training for special responsibilities in the Babylonian government. Daniel was a prophet who had been given special understanding in visions and dreams (Dan. 1:17). Nebuchadnezzar was the first real world ruler. H e had conquered a vast empire, including the nation Judah. This king had a dream so impressive it troubled him-moved him to tremendous concern. He demanded that his magicians, astrologers and sorcerers tell him both what he had dreamed, and what i t meant. They could not. They were baffled. Then Daniel was brought before the king. Daniel disclaimed any more human ability t o interpret dreams than the Chaldean magicians, BUT, he said, there is a GOD heaven that revealeth secrets, in and maketh known t o the king Nebuchadnezzar what shall be in the latter days (Dan. 2:28). F i r s t , Gods purpose was t o reveal t o t h i s world-ruling human king t h a t there is a GOD in over all nations, heaven-that GODIS SUPREME RULER governments and kings-that God RULES THE UNIVERSE!
297
It was God who placed the cherub Lucifer on the throne of the earth and Lucifer, who has become Satan the Devil, remains on earths throne only because God allows it, and only until God sends Jesus Christ to sit on that throne when he removes Satan. This Chaldean king knew only about the many pagan demon gods. He knew nothing of the true living ALMIGHTY God. Like people and rulers, even today, he did not know that GODis the living, REAL, active, RULING and GOVERNING PERSONAGE who actually and literally governs not only what is on earth, but the UNIVERSE ENTIRELY! The whole purpose of this DREAM was to reveal GODS GOVERNMENT-the fact t h a t God RULES-the truth of THE KINGDOM OF GOD-the very thing that is the CHRIST!And, one and only true GOSPEL OF JESUS secondly, t o reveal-preserved in writing for us TODAY-what is to happen in the latter daysactually within the next two decades-TaIs LAST HALF OF
THE TWENTIETH CENTURY!
For US, Today! This is no dry, dull, dead writing for a people of 2,500 years ago. This is LIVING, TREMENDOUS, NEWS for BIG OUR DAY! It is advance news for us, NOW. News before it happens-of the most colossal event of all earths history certain to occur in your lifetime-during the very next few years! This is THE TRUE GOSPEL! It is the very gospel Christ preached! It is intended for you and me TODAY! It is vital that you UNDERSTAND! Read, in your own Bible, Daniel 2, verses 28 through 35. In his dream, this king had seen a vast statue-larger than any image or statue ever built by man-so tremendous it was terrifying, even in a dream. Its head was of fine gold, its breast and arms of silver,
298
the belly and thighs of brass, legs of solid iron, feet a mixture of iron and clay. There was a time element. Nebuchadnezzar had viewed it until a supernatural STONE came from heaven, smashing the statue on its feet. Then the whole of the statue broke into small pieces, and was actually blown away by the wind-it disappeared! Then this STONE expanded miraculously and quickly became a great MOUNTAIN-SO great it filled the whole earth! What did it mean? Did it have meaning? Yes, because this was Gods doing. Unlike ordinary dreams, this one was caused by God to convey the message of Gods sovereignty to Nebuchadnezzar-and, because it is part of the written Word of God, t o us today-to reveal important facts of the TRUE GOSPEL! This is the dream, said Daniel (verse 36), and we will tell the interpretation thereof before the king. This, then, is GODS interpretation. It is decidedly not Herbert W. Armstrongs interpretation. Men ought never t o interpret the Bible. The Bible gives us GODS OWN INTERPRETATION! Here it is: Thou, 0 king, art a king of kings-he was the first real WORLD RULER over a world empire! . . . for the God of heaven hath given thee a kingdom, power, and strength, and glory. God was revealing himself t o this human world-dictator as the MOST HIGH Ruler over all. People today, like this Chaldean king, seem not t o think of God as a RULER-aS the Supreme One who GOVERNS-as the Head of GOVERNMENT. The Eternal was revealing himself through Daniel to Nebuchadnezzarand through the Bible to you and to me TODAY-aS a SOVEREIGN, POWERFUL, G O V E R N I N G GODwho is to ALL be obeyed! Thou, continued Daniel t o this human emperor,
299
art this head of gold. And after thee shall arise another KINGDOM inferior to thee, and another third KINGDOM of brass, which shall bear rule over all the earth (verses 37-39).
What IS a Kingdom?
Notice! This is speaking of KINGDOMS. I t is referring to kingdoms that bear rule over the people on earth. It is speaking of GOVERNMENTS! It is not speaking of ethereal sentiments set up in the hearts of men. It is not speaking of churches. It is speaking of the kind of GOVERNMENTS that bear RULE and AUTHORITY over nations of PEOPLE here on earth. It is literal. It is specific. There is no misunderstanding, here, as to what is meant by the word kingdom. There is no misunderstanding the interpretation. GODgives his own interpretation through the prophet Daniel. The great metallic-image represented national -~ and_ _ international GovERNMENTs-real, literal KING-.~ __ ..~ .
~ ~ ~~ ~ ~ ~
DOMS,_
..It represented a successio~of-w~r~d_-r.uli.nggovernments. First was the head of gold. That represented ~Nebuchadnezzar and his kingdom-the Chaldean Empire. After him-later, in time sequence-was to come a second, then a third KINGDOM which shall bear RULE over all the earth-world empire! Then, verse 40, the legs of iron represent a fourth world empire. It was to be strong, even as iron is strong -stronger militarily than its predecessors. Yet, as silver is less valuable than gold, brass than silver, iron than brass, though each metal was harder and stronger, the succession would deteriorate morally and spiritually. The two legs meant the fourth empire would be divided. After the Chaldean Empire came the still larger
300
Persian Empire, then the Greco-Macedonian, and fourth, the Roman Empire. I t was divided, with capitals a t Rome and Constantinople. Now-verse 44!Read it! Get your Bible. See it with your own eyes in your own Bible. Here, in PLAIN LANGUAGE, is Gods explanation of what the KINGDOM OF GODIS: And in the days of these kings.. .-it is here speaking of the ten toes, part of iron and part of brittle clay. This, by connecting the prophecy with -Daniel 7, ~. referring,to.the neW-UNITED and Revelation 13 and 17, is -out-.qfthe STATEs-OF EUROPE_tha~-iSnow_forming.g, E s p e a n Common Market, before- your very eyes! ___ . . Revelation-.17:_l2-makcs-pFla-the detail-th,at -it shall~be a union of TEN KINGS OR KINGDOMS thatJRev. 17:8) shall . resurrect the old l m & -_R IE . So, mark carefully the time element! In the days of these kings-in the days of these ten nations or .~ N ~groups of nations_that_shal!, I~. . OUR TIME, resurrect . briefly2he.Rgman-Empire-notice what shall happen: . . . shall the God of heaven set up a kingdom, which shall never_be-destr~oxed.-,butIit shall break in ieces and consume all these kingdoms, - .and i t . shall -. ~. stand for ever!
__-
;oh+a
Yes, in OUR TIME! Now here we have described FOUR universal world empires-the only four that ever existed! Revelation 13 and 17 show that, after the fall of the original Roman Empire, there would be ten revivals-SEVEN of which would be ruled over by a gentile CHURCH-the daughter of ancient BABYLON-a church claiming t o be Christian, but actually named by God MYSTERY, BABYLON great-or, the more plainly, BABYLONIAN MYSTERIES!
301
%%
Six of those have come and gone. The seventh is now forming-the last, final,b+ef resurrection of the Roman-Empire. by -ten- European- groups-or _nations. These are revealed in Daniel 2 as the ten toes of iron- _. __ - and c l a y mixed. In their days-and they shall last but a very short space, possibly no more than two to three,and-a-half a .. ___ .year&=ah&.the-GQ~-oF-H~AyEN .SET-UP-A_ KINGDOM thaLshalLneyer be d e s t g e d . This, then, shall be THE KINGDOM OF GOD! . Compare with Revelation 17. Here is pictured a church. Not a small church-=REAT church. She rules over many waters (verse l ) , which are described in verse 15 as different nations speaking -\different languages. She posed as t h e Church of GOD-which Scripture s a m p h . 5:23; Rev. 19:7; Matt. 25:l-10; etc.) is the affianced bride of CHRIST, t o be spiritually MARRIED t o him a t his Second COMING. But %he has comBj&ted _fornication. How? By having direct political union with HUMAN GOVERNMENTS Of THIS WORLD! She sat on (Rev. 17:3) all seven of these resurrections of the Roman Empire-called the Holy Roman Empire. She RULED OVER the human kingdoms-as a common-law and unmarried wife ruling her paramour husband-a totally unnatural and ungodly relationship. She is, theLefore, to :sit on: this last Ihead of the -__ Beast-this final resurrection of the R o s a n Empire. I t will be -a union of church and state- It is-% endure but a very short t i m % ~ ~ ~ ~ G ~ T ~ G A I N tS T CHRIST a COMING! -HIS SECOND -- - ___ _ _That will be its END.We see i t in p r o c e s m , now. (The members 1 of the European Common Market %re probably not the same ten t c w i l l resurrect the Holy _Roman -
302
Empire.) Therefore we are CLOSE to the coming of are now very near t h e E ND of this world!Jc
is these earthly governments of Satan that will be destroyed and replaced by Christ at his Second Coming. Christs kingdom is of THE WORLD TOMORROW! Have you not read what the angel proclaimed to Mary, the mother of Jesus, prior to his birth? Jesus told Pilate he was born to become a KING. The angel of God said to Mary: . . . thou shalt conceive in thy womb, and bring forth a son, and shalt call his name JESUS. shall He be great, and shall be called the Son of the Highest: and the Lord God shall give unto him the THRONE of his father David: and he shall reign over the house of Jacob for ever; and of his kingdom there shall be NO END (Luke 1:31-33). Why do the churches of this world never mention any of these scriptures? Millions have attended churches all their lives and never heard any of these scriptures about Christ becoming a king or about the coming kingdom of God. These scriptures tell you PLAINLY t h a t GOD is supreme RULER. They tell you in plainest language that Jesus was born to be a KING-that he is going to RULE ALL NATIONS-that his kingdom shall rule eternally. But all this is only part of the fantastic, amazing, actually SHOCKING TRUTH about the KINGDOM OF GOD. The KINGDOM OF GOD will rule ouer the peoples and nations of the earth. Yet these mortal peoples and nations will NOT be the kingdom, not even i n the kingdom of God. They shall be merely RULED OVER BY
IT!
Every major step of these soon-coming events is laid bare before our eyes in biblical prophecy. The same Jesus Christ who walked over the hills and valleys of the Holy Land and the streets of Jerusalem more than 1,900 years ago is coming again. He said he would come again. After he was crucified, God raised him from the dead after three days and three nights (Matt. 12:40; Acts 2:32; I Cor. 15:3-4). He ascended to the Throne of God, Headquarters of the Government of the Universe (Acts 1:9-11; Heb. 1:3; 8:l; 10:12; Rev. 3:21). He is the nobleman of the parable, who went to the Throne of God-the far country-to be coronated as King of kings over all nations, and then to return to earth (Luke 19:12-27). Again, he is in heaven until the times of restitution of all things (Acts 3:19-21). Restitution means restoring to a former state or condition. In this case, the restoring of Gods government on earth, and thus, the restoring of world peace, and utopian conditions. Present world turmoil, escalating wars and contentions will climax in world trouble so great that, unless God intervenes, no human flesh would be saved alive (Matt. 24:22). A t its very climax when delay would result in blasting all life from off this planet, Jesus Christ will return. This time he is coming as divine God. He is coming in all the power and glory of the universe-ruling Creator. (Matt. 24:30; 25:31.) He is coming as King of kings, and Lord of lords (Rev. 19:16), to establish world super-government and rule all nations with a rod of iron (Rev. 19:15; 12:5). Why do the professing Christian churches omit all these scriptures about Christ coming and of his ruling the earth? Jesus very gospel was that of the kingdom of
305
God he shall then establish on earth. The millions of church members have never heard these scriptures or the actual gospel of Jesus Christ. Think of it. The glorified Christ-coming in all the splendor, the supernatural power and the glory of God Almighty-coming to save mankind alive-coming to stop escalating wars, nuclear mass destruction, human pain and suffering-coming to usher in peace, abundant well-being, happiness and joy for all mankind. But will he be welcomed by the nations? World famous scientists now say frankly that the only hope for survival on earth is a supreme worldruling government, controlling all military power. They admit that is impossible for man to accomplish. Christ is coming to give us just that. But will he be welcome? A leading American newsweekly gave the following surprising appraisal of mans only hope: The once optimistic hope of Americans, the article said, for a well-ordered and stable world, is fading. Expenditures close to a trillion dollars have failed to provide stability. Rather conditions have worsened. This appraisal indicated that among officials, the prevailing view is gaining acceptance that tensions and world problems are becoming too deep-seated to be solved except by a strong hand from someplace. A strong hand from someplace. God Almighty is going to send a very strong Hand from someplace to save humanity!
Christ Unwelcome?
But will humanity shout with joy, and welcome him in frenzied ecstasy and enthusiasm? Will even t h e churches of traditional Christianity? They will not! They will believe, because the false
306
ministers of Satan (I1 Cor. 11:13-15) have deceived them, that he is the Antichrist. The churches and the nations will be angry at his coming (Rev. 11:15 with 11:18), and the military forces will actually attempt to fight him to destroy him (Rev. 17:14)! The nations will be engaged in the climactic battle 1, of the coming World War 1 1 with the battlefront at Jerusalem (Zech. 14:l-2) and then Christ will return. In supernatural power he will fight against those nations that fight against him (verse 3). He will totally defeat them (Rev. 17:14)! His feet shall stand in that day upon the mount of Olives, a very short distance to the east of Jerusalem (Zech. 144).
away in their holes, and their tongue shall consume away in their mouth (Zech. 14:12). Perhaps it is even plainer in the Revised Standard Version: And this shall be the plague with which the Lord will smite all the peoples that wage war against Jerusalem: their flesh shall rot while they are still 0-n__ _ _ _ _ their feet, their eyes shall r o t j n ___- - - - and their their sockets, --. _./- -_ __- tongues shaII-iot in their mouths. __ - This rottinx-o?-their f l x h off their bones will happen almost instantaneously-wxle they are still on thezr feet. What a divine retribution against armies that will fight against Christ. What a demonstration of the divine power with which the glorified Christ will rule all nations. Rebellion against Gods law and Gods rule must, and speedily will be, put down. Can you realize that every unhappiness, every evil that has come t o humanity, has been the result of transgressing Gods law? If no one ever had any other god before the true God; if all children were reared to honor, respect and obey their parents, and all parents reared their children in Gods ways; if no one ever allowed the spirit of murder to enter his heart, if there were no wars, no killing of humans by humans; if all marriages were kept happy and there were no transgressions of chastity before or after marriage; if all had so much concern for the good and welfare of others that no one would steal-and we could throw away all locks, keys and safes; if everyone told the trutheveryones word were good-everyone were honest; if no one ever coveted what was not rightfully his, but had so much outgoing concern for the welfare of others that he really believed i t is more blessed to giue than t o receive-what a happy world we would have! In such a world, with all loving and worshiping God
_-
-___-_c_-
308
with all their minds, hearts and strength-with all having concern for the welfare of all others equal t o concern for self-there would be no divorce-no broken homes or families, no juvenile delinquency, no crime, no jails or prisons, no police except for peaceful direction and supervision as a public service for all, no wars, no military establishments. But, further, God has set in motion physical laws that operate in our bodies and minds, as well as the spiritual law. There would be no sickness, ill health, pain or suffering. There would be, on the contrary, vigorous, vibrant good health, filled with dynamic interest in life, enthusiastic interest in constructive activities bringing happiness and joy. There would be cleanliness, vigorous activity, real progress, no slums, n o degenerate backward races or areas of earth.
Resurrected Saints
As the resurrected Christ ascended to heaven in clouds, so he shall return to earth in clouds (Acts 1:9-11; Matt. 24:30). Just as he is returning (I Thess. 4:14-17), the dead in Christ-those who have received and been led by Gods Holy Spirit (Rom. 811, 14)-will rise in a gigantic resurrection, made immortal-including all the prophets of old (Luke 13:28). Those who have the Spirit of God, then living, shall be instantaneously changed from mortal to immortal (I Cor. 15:50-54) and, together with those resurrected, shall rise to meet the descending glorified Jesus Christ (I Thess. 4:17) in the clouds in the air. They shall be with him, where he is, forever (John 14:3). They shall-with him-come down out of the clouds, and stand with him, therefore, that very same day, on the Mount of Olives (Zech. 144-5). These changed, converted saints, now made
309
immortal, will then rule t h e nations-nations of mortals-under Christ (Dan. 7:22; Rev. 2:26-27; 3:21).
__
I--
The multiplied millions shall have acquired it. And even though Satan will then be restrained from continuing to broadcast it, what has been acquired as habit will not be automatically removed. Yet God has made us humans free moral agents. He has given us control over our own minds, except as we may be blinded by Satans pull of evil by deception. But no longer will earths mortal humans be deceived!Now the all-powerful Christ, and the immortal saints ruling under him, will begin removing the scales that have blinded human minds. That is why I say complete utopia cannot be ushered in all at once. Multiple millions will still hold to the attitude of rebellion-of vanity, lust and greed. But with Christs coming shall begin the process of re-education-of opening deceived minds-of undeceiving minds, and bringing them to a voluntary repentance. From the time of Christs supernatural takeover, and Satans banishment, Gods law and the word of the Eternal shall go forth from Zion, spreading over the whole earth (Isa. 23). The 6,000-year sentence God placed on Adams world, of being cut off from God, will be ended. Christ will begin calling all mortals on earth to repentance and spiritual salvation! Gods Holy Spirit shall flow out from Jerusalem (Zech. 14:8). What glory! A new day shall have dawned. Peace shall soon come. Men shall turn from the way of get to the way of give-Gods way of love. A NEW CIVILIZATION shall now grip the earth! But what kind of a new world tomorrow will from then be developed? In Isaiah 2:2-4 and in Micah 4:l-3 it says: And it shall come to pass in the last days, that the mountain of the Lords house shall be established
311
in the top of the mountains, and shall be exalted above the hills; and all nations shall flow unto it. And many people shall go and say, Come ye, and let us go up to the mountain of the Lord, to the house of the God of Jacob; and he will teach us of his ways, and we shall walk in his paths; for out of Zion shall go forth the law, and the word of the Lord from Jerusalem. And he shall judge among the nations, and shall rebuke many people: and they shall beat their swords into plowshares, and their spears into pruninghooks: nation shall not lift up sword against nation, neither shall they learn war any more. Think of it! No more wars. No fear of man or beast. World peace a t last. Something will have to cause that peace. The law of God, which a professed Christianity teaches was done away, shall go out from Jerusalem and the earth will be as full of the knowledge of Gods way of life as the ocean beds are full of water. Even the wild animals will be tamed and a t peace: The wolf also shall dwell with the lamb, and the leopard shall lie down with the kid; and the calf and the young lion and the fatling together; and a little child shall lead them. And the cow and the bear shall feed; their young ones shall lie down together: and the lion shall eat straw like the ox. And the sucking child shall play on the hole of the asp, and the weaned child shall put his hand on the cockatrice den. They shall not hurt nor destroy in all my holy mountain: for the earth shall be full of the knowledge of the Lord, as the waters cover the sea (Isa. 11:6-9). Now picture the changed conditions! Look now a t the solved problems! See, now, a glimpse into a world of no illiteracy, no poverty, no famine and starvation, into a world where crime decreases rapidly, people learn honesty, chastity,
312
world of peace,
Pamir Knot, the huge giants of the Himalayas, the Atlas, Taurus, Pyrenees, Rockies, Sierras and Hindu Kush-level the immense sweep of the Andes, and all the other forbidding, towering, virtually uninhabitable mountains of earth. Then, provide good, gentle rainfall, in right balance, just a t the right season. And what happens? Multiple millions of acres of unbelievably fertile, productive, wonderful farmland suddenly become available-just waiting t o be discovered, and pioneered. Impossible? In the hands of man-certainly. But look what God promises. Fear not, thou worm Jacob, and ye men of Israel; I will help thee, saith the Lord, and thy redeemer, the Holy One of Israel. Behold, I will make thee a new sharp threshing instrument having teeth: thou shalt thresh t h e mountains, and beat them small, and shalt make the hills as chaff. Thou shalt fan them, and the wind shall carry them away, and the whirlwind shall scatter them: and thou shalt rejoice in the Lord, and shalt glory in the Holy One of Israel. When the poor and needy seek water, and there is none, and their tongue faileth for thirst, I the Lord will hear them, I the God of Israel will NOT forsake them. I will open rivers in high places, and fountains [artesian wells] in the midst of the valleys: I will make the wilderness a pool of water, and the dry land springs of water. I will plant in the wilderness the cedar, the shittah [acacia] tree, and the myrtle, and the oil tree; I will set in the desert the fir tree, and the pine, and the box tree [cypress] together: that they may see, and know, and
314
consider, and understand together, that the hand of the Lord hath done this, and the Holy One of Israel hath created it (Isa. 41:14-20).
Some years ago, in a dry, dusty canyon deep in the profusion of hills between Bakersfield and Los Angeles, California, a minor earthquake struck. The proprietors of a small resort, now almost totally ignored, and nearly always deserted because of the parched conditions of the area, were considering closing up and moving elsewhere. Suddenly, a groaning, jolting earthquake rippled through the arid hills. Not long after the earth rocked and groaned beneath their feet, they heard a faint gurgling sound. They ran to the dry, dusty creek bed
315
that coursed through their property-and were utterly amazed to see water flowing swiftly along. As the creek gradually cleared up, they found the water to be crystal clear and pure-sweet and refreshing to drink. Needless to say, their business picked up again. Somehow, the earthquake had broken open an underground water source, sending it cascading through their property. Think about the vast wastes of this earth. Does it sound incredible, unbelievable that God could make them blossom like a rose? Why should it? The mountains were formed. Great forces caused gigantic upheavals, or huge cracks and slippages in the crust of the earth. Massive blocks of granite lunged up into the sky-the earth rocking and reeling in the throes of the greatest earthquakes in its history. Mountains were made-they didnt just happen. The God of all power, who formed the hills and mountains (Amos 4:13; Ps. 90:2), will reform them-will reshape the surface of this earth. Read of the huge earthquakes yet to come that will directly accomplish much of the rehabilitation of the land surfaces. (See Revelation 16:18; Zechariah 14:4.) God says, The mountains quake a t him, and the hills melt. . . (Nah. 1:15).
gradually wears away additional land. The lowlands of Europe, Holland in particular, consist to quite an extent of land reclaimed from the sea. Think of the multiple millions of additional acres available to mankind if some of the worlds oceans were reduced in size. And God says they shall be! Notice it, And the Lord shall utterly destroy the tongue of the Egyptian sea; and with his mighty wind shall he shake his hand over the river, and shall smite i t in the seven streams, and make men go over dryshod (Isa. 11:15). Sounds incredible-but its true! When Jesus Christ becomes the great Ruler of this earth, he will use that great power. In vision, John saw the angels praising Christ at his coming to rule this earth. They said: We give thee thanks, 0 Lord God Almighty, which art, and wast, and art to come; because thou hast taken to thee thy great power, and hast reigned (Rev. 11:17). The combined force of right education about true health, and healing of all sickness, when it is repented of, will mean perfect, utopian health. Notice how God describes it. But there the glorious Lord will be unto us a place of broad rivers and streams; wherein shall go no galley with oars, neither shall gallant ship pass thereby. For the Lord is our judge, the Lord is our lawgiver, the Lord is our king; he will save us. And the inhabitant shall not say, I am sick: the people that dwell therein shall be forgiven their iniquity (Isa. 33:21-22, 24). Listen to this wonderful promise: Strengthen ye the weak hands, and confirm the feeble knees. Say to them that are of a fearful heart, Be strong, fear not: 317
behold, your God will come with vengeance, even God with a recompence; he will come and save you. Then the eyes of the blind shall be opened, and the ears of the deaf shall be unstopped. Then shall the lame man leap as an hart, and the tongue of the dumb sing. . . (Isa. 35:3-6). God describes the rewards for obedience to his laws of mercy and love. Notice Isaiah 58%: Then shall thy light break forth as the morning, and thine health shall spring forth speedily. . . .
Happiness in Health
In describing the conditions of good health and plenty to be ushered in upon the earth, God says, For I will restore health unto thee, and I will heal thee of thy wounds.. . (Jer. 3017). Therefore they shall come and sing in the height of Zion, and shall flow together to the goodness of the Lord, for wheat, and for wine, and for oil, and for the young of the flock and of the herd: and their soul shall be as a watered garden; and they shall not sorrow any more a t all. Then shall the virgin rejoice in the dance, both young men and old together: for I will turn their mourning into joy, and will comfort them, and make them rejoice from their sorrow. And I will satiate the soul of the priests with fatness, and my people shall be satisfied with my goodness, saith the [Eternal] (Jer. 31:12-14). And why not have good health? Why should we be so willing to believe such a perfect state of health and joy is impossible? Why are all these scriptures ignored by professing Christian preaching? Instead they picture going to heaven with idleness and ease and no accomplishment.
318
There are blessings for observing the laws of health-absolute guarantees good health will resultand that sickness and disease will become in the third and fourth generations a thing of the past. Notice what God promised his people: . . . if thou shalt hearken diligently unto the voice of the Lord thy God, to observe and to do all his commandments which I command thee this day . . . all these blessings shall come on thee, and overtake thee, if thou shalt hearken unto the voice of the Lord thy God. Blessed shalt thou be in the city, and blessed shalt thou be in the field. Blessed shall be the fruit of thy body, and the fruit of thy ground, and the fruit of thy cattle, the increase of thy kine, and the flocks of thy sheep. Blessed shall be thy basket and thy store (Deut. 281-5). Also, God shows individual races returning to their own lands, repopulating them. He shall cause them that come of Jacob to take root: Israel shall blossom and bud, and fill the face of the world with fruit (Isa. 27:6). God says the wastes will be rebuilt. For, behold, I am for you, and I will turn unto you, and ye shall be tilled and sown: and I will multiply men upon you, all the house of Israel, even all of it: and the cities shall be inhabited, and the wastes shall be builded: and I will multiply upon you man and beast; and they shall increase and bring fruit: and I will settle you after your old estates.. . (Ezek. 36:9-11). Read the whole chapter of Ezekiel 36. God says: I . . . I will also cause you to dwell in the cities, and the wastes shall be builded. . . . This land that was desolate is become like the garden of Eden; and the waste and desolate and ruined cities are become fenced, and are inhabited (verses 33, 35). 319
MYSTERYOFTHEAGES
And what about all other nations? Notice: In that day shall there be a highway out of Egypt [Egypt still exists as a nation] t o Assyria [many of whose people migrated centuries ago to northcentral Europe-modern Germany], and the Assyrian shall come into Egypt, and the Egyptian into Assyria, and the Egyptians shall serve with the Assyrians. In that day shall Israel be the third with Egypt and with Assyria, even a blessing in the midst of the land: whom the Lord of hosts shall bless, saying, Blessed be Egypt my people, and Assyria the work of my hands, and Israel mine inheritance (Isa. 19:23-25).
Total Literacy Think what an almost unbelievable step forward it would be, if all nations and peoples everywhere spoke, and read, and wrote the same language. But today, vast areas of the earth do not even possess a written language. Millions upon millions are illiterate-cannot read or write, even their own names. Once the returning Christ conquers this earth, he will usher in a n era of total literacy, total education-and give the world one, new, pure language. This subject by itself needs a book to describe. The whole literary processes of the whole earth changed. Today, all languages are corrupt. They are literally filled with pagan, heathen terms-superstition-misnomers-exceptions to rules-peculiar idioms. God says: For then will I turn to the people a pure language, that they may all call upon the name of the Lord, to serve him with one consent (Zeph. 3:9). Think of the new era of good literature, good music, and of the avoiding of duplicated effort, misunderstandings through linguistic difficulties and thousands of
320
painstaking hours of translations. What an age it will be, when all the world becomes truly educated-and speaks the same language.
What about the Economic Structure? God shows Jerusalem will become the financial capital, as well as the spiritual capital, of earth. The Creator says, of the newly built city: Then thou shalt see, and flow together, and thine heart shall fear, and be enlarged; because the abundance of the sea [the worlds gold and silver reserves are mostly under the seas] shall be converted unto thee, the forces [wealth, margin] of the Gentiles shall come unto thee (Isa. 60:5). But, as weve read, God Almighty says hell raise many places now covered by waters of the oceans; that hell make much more land available. Scientists know most of the earths raw materials lie in the strata beneath the depths of the seas. God says this vast wealth will become available for use during the reign of Jesus Christ on this earth. God says the wealth of the world will be centered in Jerusalem, and that the vast rebuilding programs, rehabilitation processes and new-age pioneering that begin will be backed by that wealth. . . . Yet once, it is a little while, and I will shake the heavens, and the earth, and the sea, and the dry land; and I will shake all nations, and the desire [desirable things, margin] of all nations shall come: and I will fill this house with glory, saith the Lord of hosts. The silver is mine, and the gold is mine, saith the Lord of hosts (Hag. 2:6-8). But Gods great treasury will be for public display. No gold bricks, reposing in deep, subterranean vaults-utterly useless except for their meaning-no fear of thievery, or robbery. But breathtakingly beau321
MYSTERY
OF THE AGES
tiful decorations for the capital building, the Temple in which Christ will dwell. A fixed standard will be set up, and values will never change. No more speculating or gambling on other peoples ability. Never again will any person become rich from investing in the labors and creative ability of another person. No more stock markets, world banks, financing centers, insurance companies, mortgage companies, loan agencies, or time payments. In Gods abundant government people will buy only what they need, when they can afford it, when they have the cash to pay for it. No more interest. And no more taxes.
And what a blessing that will be. None of the financial burdens that curse most peoples today. God says financial blessings are to become the order of the day. Take away thievery, robbery, accidents, weather damage, rust, rot and decay, from plants, stores, manufacturing concerns. How much less could merchandise then sell for-and a t how much greater profits?
shall men give into your bosom. For with the same measure that ye mete withal it shall be measured to you again (Luke 638). The giving standard will be followed in Gods rule on this earth-not the grasping, conniving, striving, deceitful, clandestine, furtive, scurrilous, devious, cheating and lying chicanery that is commonplace in todays business world. But when God converts rebellious mankind by the display of his mighty power-when he brings t o pass his promise: As I live, saith the Lord, every knee shall bow to me, and every tongue shall confess to God (Rom. 14:11), when he humbles the vain, proud spirit of man-then man will be made willing to give. And until God breaks the haughty spirit of man (Isa. 2:10-12,17)-the peoples of earth will not be ready to accept such a wonderful, loving, generous, honest, giving standard for the whole economy. It would require a thick book to begin to describe the wonderful conditions that could prevail on this earth-and that will finally prevail, when the human heart is humbled, converted-given the very nature of God (I1 Pet. 1:4). Never again will anyone build a building he cant afford, and doesnt need, to lease and rent to tenants who help him pay for it. No more interest. God says it is sin to lend money a t usury or interest. Once each fifty years, all debts, public and private, will be canceled, completely.
324
other huge bureaus, which are suspiciously watching other bureaus; no military establishment; no intelligence (spy) agencies or members of Interpol; no huge cartels, monopolies, unions, or giant government spending-the economy of the world will be healed. Think of it. No more foreign aid-none of the wasted billions t o buy lovers (allies) (Ezek. 23:9, 22; Lam. 1:2, 19; Ezekiel, 16th chapter) who turn and rend you later. No more strings-attached government grants to industry, to science and space technology, t o schools and institutions for research. Instead, every necessary industry, educational institution, and business will be in sound financial condition. What a world that will be!
discrediting his opponents. No time will be wasted in mudslinging campaigns in the lust for power. No human will be given any government office. All in government service will then be divine Spirit beings, in the kingdom of God-the God family. All officials will be appointed-and by the divine Christ, who reads and knows mens hearts, their inner character, and abilities or lack of ability. Youll find a description of Christs supernatural insight into the very character of others in Isaiah 11:2-5. Notice it: And the spirit of the Lord shall rest upon him, the spirit of wisdom and understanding, the spirit of counsel and might, the spirit of knowledge and of the fear of the Lord; and shall make him of quick understanding. . .and he shall not judge after the sight of his eyes, neither reprove after the hearing of his ears [hearsay]: but with righteousness shall he judge the poor, and reprove with equity for the meek of the earth. . . (Isa. 11:2-4). Remember, God is t h e Supreme One who is love-who gives-who rules with outgoing concern for the ruled. He will rule for the highest good of the people. The most able, the most righteous, those best fitted for office will be placed in all offices of responsibility and power. There will then be two kinds of beings on earth -humans, being ruled by those made divine. Some resurrected saints will rule over ten cities, some over five (Luke 19:17-19). T h i n k of it-no money wasted on political campaigns. No splits in political parties with quarreling and hatreds. No political parties!
coming t o usher in, what we shall see on earth is happiness, peace, abundance and justice for all. Did you ever read just what this New Covenant will consist of? Did you suppose i t will do away with Gods law? Exactly the opposite. For this is the covenant [that Christ is coming to establish, youll read in Hebrews 8101 . . . I will put my laws into their mind, and write them in their hearts. . . . When Gods laws are in our hearts-when we love Gods ways, and in our hearts want t o live by them, human nature will be put under subjection-people will want to live the way that causes peace, happiness, abundance, joyful well-being! But remember, the humans remaining on the earth after Christs return-ruled then by Christ and those resurrected or changed to immortality-will themselves still have human nature. They will be still unconverted. Two Courses of Action But Christ and the governing kingdom of God, then set up as the governing family, will bring about the coming utopia by two basic courses of action. 1) All crime and organized rebellion will be put down by force-divine supernatural force. 2) Christ will then set his hand to reeducate and t o save or spiritually convert the world. Notice, first, how the social and religious customs will be changed by divine force. God gave seven annual Festivals and Holy Days he commanded to be observed. They contained great and important meaning. They pictured Gods master plan for working out his purpose for humanity. They were established forever. Jesus observed them, setting us an example. The apostles observed them (Acts 18:21; 206,
327
16; I Cor. 5%; 16:8). The true, original Churchincluding gentile converts-kept them. They were Gods way-Gods customs for his people. But people rejected Gods ways and customs, and turned, instead, to the ways and customs of the pagan religions. People did what seemed right t o themselves. And since human minds in this world have been hostile against God (Rom. 8:7), attitudes of hostility against Gods way of life have prevailed. The ways that seem right to a man have been ways contrary t o t h e ways t h a t produce peace, happiness and abundant living. These same wrong ways seem right to most people today! We realize they seem right-not wrong-to most who will be reading these words. But can we realize that there is a way which seemeth right unto a man, but the end thereof are the ways of death? (Prov. 14:12). And if you turn t o Proverbs 1625 you will see the same thing repeated: There is a way that seemeth right unto a man, but the end thereof are the ways of death. God said through Moses: Ye shall not do after all the things that we do here this day, every man whatsoever is right in his own eyes (Deut. 12:8). And again: Take heed to thyself that thou be not snared by following them [pagan religious customs] . . .and that thou inquire not after their gods, saying, How did these nations serve their gods? even so will I do likewise. Thou shalt not do so unto the Lord thy God: for every abomination to the Lord, which he hateth, have they done unto their gods.. . (Deut. 12:30-31). Today the professing Christian world rejects Gods Holy Days; holy t o him, b u t which a deceived Christianity hates. They observe instead the pagan days-Christmas, New Years, Easter, and otherswhich God hateth! Many know and confess that these
328
are pagan-but they argue, We dont observe these in worshiping the pagan gods, we use their customs in worshiping Christ and the true God. That is the way that seemeth right to people. They may not mean any wrong. They are deceived. A deceived man doesnt know he is wrong. He thinks he is right. He may be as sincere as those who have found Gods way and obey it. Yet God says he will not accept that kind of observance or worship. I t is an abomination to him-which he hateth. But it is those who have been deceived, whose eyes God will open t o his truth when Christ returns t o rule all nations of mortals still left alive.
But now Christ is returning to earth to restore Gods ways-including Gods Festivals. Those who rebelliously wont keep Gods Holy Days now-who sneer at them in scathing contempt-will observe them when Christ returns. Notice what this scripture says: And it shall be, that whoso will not come up of all the families of the earth [including gentile nations] unto Jerusalem to worship the King, the Lord of hosts, even upon them shall be no rain. And if the family of Egypt go not up, and come not, that have no rain; there shall be the plague, wherewith the Lord will smite the heathen that come not up to keep the feast of tabernacles. This shall be the punishment of Egypt, and the punishment of all nations that come not up to keep the feast of tabernacles (Zech. 14:17-19). These passages give us the method by which Christ will rule with a rod of iron-of how he will use supernatural force to bring people of all nations t o his right ways-ways that are the cause of real blessings.
As for man being qualified to rule and administer government, God says of government officials today: None calleth for justice, nor any pleadeth for t r u t h they trust in vanity and speak lies; they conceive mischief, and bring forth iniquity.. . .Their feet run to evil, and they make haste to shed innocent blood: their thoughts are thoughts of iniquity; wasting a n d destruction are in their paths. The way of peace they know not; and there is no judgment in their goings: they have made them crooked paths: whosoever goeth therein shall not know peace. T h e n t h e people, u n d e r t h i s h u m a n misgovernment, say: Therefore is judgment far from us, neither doth justice overtake us: we wait for light [solution of civil, personal, national and world problems], but behold obscurity; for brightness, but we walk in darkness. We grope for the wall like the blind, and we grope as if we had no eyes: we stumble a t noonday as in the night; we are in desolate places as dead men (Isa. 59:4, 7-10). Then, in this chapter foretelling our time, the final solution is given: And the Redeemer shall come to Zion. . . (verse 20). And, continuing: Arise, shine; for thy light is come, and the glory of the Lord is risen upon thee (Isa. 60:l). The only hope of justice-of peace-of truth-of right solutions to all this worlds problems-is the coming in power and glory of Christ t o set up world government. Right government. The government of God! In this, and many other passages, God shows in his Word to mankind how utterly helpless man is to govern himself and his fellows. Now 6,000 years of human experience have brought mankind t o the very brink of world suicide.
331
So, in other words, the first 6,000 years of Gods 7,000-year plan were allotted to allow Satan to labor a t his work of deceiving the world, followed by 1,000 years (one millennial day) when Satan shall not be allowed to do any of his work of deception. P u t another way, God marked out six millennial days to allow man to indulge in the spiritual labor of sin, followed by a millennium of spiritual rest, under the enforced government of God.
plan your own social systems (in a word, organize your own human civilization). But in sentencing man to 6,000 years of being cut off from God, he reserved the prerogative of calling to special service and contact with God such as he should choose for his purpose. During this day of man, God has prepared for his own millennia1 civilization, in all its phases-governmental, educational, religious-his whole civilization. It all began with Abraham. In his day, there was only one man on earth who was a t once a man of strong character and at the same time meekly and wholly submissive and obedient to God-to Gods laws and his direction and rule. That man was Abraham. God began training men for top positions of authority in his coming world, with Abraham. Abraham lived in the most advanced civilization-the most developed and, as people thought, most desirable locality. God said to Abraham (then named Abram), Get thee out of thy country, and from thy kindred, and from thy fathers house, unto a land that I will shew thee (Gen. 12:l). There was no argument. Abraham didnt say, But why? Why must I give up all the pleasures of this civilization-give up even my relatives and friends? Abraham didnt argue or delay. I t is written, simply, So Abram departed.. . (verse 4). Abraham was put t o severe tests. But, after he died, God said, Abraham obeyed my voice, and kept my charge, my commandments, my statutes [of government], and my laws (Gen. 26:5). Abraham was being trained for high position in the
333
government of God, now soon to rule the world. He believed in, was obedient and loyal to, Gods government-its statutes and laws. Abraham was given the promises on which the salvation of every person, through Christ, is based. He is called the father (humanly) of the faithful (Gal. 3:7). To the gentiles of Galatia, the apostle Paul wrote: And if ye be Christs, then are ye [gentiles] Abrahams seed, and heirs according to the promise (Gal. 3:29). In the 16th verse, he had said: Now to Abraham and his seed [descendant-Christ] were the promises made.. . . God was starting to prepare for his kingdom-to train topflight personnel for positions in Gods civilizationwith Abraham. When Abraham proved obedient, God blessed his labors and allowed him to become wealthy. God gave him experience in the wise handling of wealth and in directing a great force of men. Isaac was reared by God-fearing, God-obeying Abraham, in Gods ways, obedient to Gods government. He became heir along with his father Abraham. He too, was trained in obedience, and also in directing and ruling over others. Then Jacob, born with this rich heredity, was educated t o follow through on the same pattern Abraham and Isaac had learned. Even though his father-in-law deceived him, and held him down, Jacob also became wealthy. He was human-as were Abraham and Isaac and all humans. He made mistakes. But he overcame. He repented. He prevailed with God. He never quit! He developed the qualities and character of leadership. He became the father of the twelve greatest nations-to-be in the soon-coming world tomorrow.
coming world super government will be organized. Yet he has given us the general pattern. He has told us specifically where 14 high executives (including Christ) will fit in. And from them we may deduce a great deal of the remaining governmental structure. Much of the coming structure of government is a t least strongly indicated by what is plainly revealed. We know it will be the government of God. God Almighty-the Father of Jesus Christ-is Supreme Lawgiver, and Head over Christ, and over all that is. We know that Jesus Christ is t o be King of kings, and Lord of lords-over both state and church, united through him. We know that King David of ancient Israel (details later) will be king over the twelve great nations composed of literal descendants of the twelve tribes of Israel. We know the twelve apostles will each be a king, sitting on a throne, over one of those great nations descended from the tribes of Israel. We know i t will be government from the top down. There is t o be a definite chain of authority. No one will be elected by the people. Mortal humans have proved they do not know how t o judge qualifications, and do not know the inner minds, hearts, intents and abilities of men. All will be divinely appointed from above. All, in positions of governmental authority, will be resurrected immortals, born of God-no longer flesh-and-blood humans. With this in mind-with t h e knowledge t h a t Abraham is (humanly) the father of all who are Christs and heirs of salvation-it becomes plain that Abraham will be given a greater position of authority in Gods kingdom than David-and that he will be over both Israelites and gentiles. He is father of gentile converts as well as Israelites.
335
MYSTERYOFTHEAGES
Then again, repeatedly the Bible uses the phrase, Abraham, Isaac and Jacob, grouping them together as a team, and calling them, together, the fathers. For the promises were repromised, also, to Isaac and Jacob, whose name was changed to Israel. What is plainly revealed indicates, then, that Abraham, Isaac and Jacob will function as a topflight team, with Abraham as chairman of the team, next under Christ in the coming world government of God. Jesus himself said, definitely, that Abraham, Isaac and Jacob shall be in t h a t glorious and glorified kingdom (Luke 13:28). Joseph qualified in a very special way, but we shall come back to him a little later.
whom Christ (yes, he was the God of the Old Testament, as many, many scriptures prove) gave the laws and the statutes of government for the nation Israel. Moses was trained as a son of a pharaoh (king of Egypt). His training and experience were among gentiles, as well as the children of Israel. Elijah, above all others, is represented in Scripture as the prophet who restored the worship of the true God-and obedience t o his commandments. When Elijah ordered King Ahab to gather on Mount Carmel all Israel (I Kings 18:19-21) and the prophets of Baal and of Asherah (Easter), he said: How long halt ye between two opinions? if the Lord be God, follow him: but if Baal, then follow him.. . . (verse 21). And when, a t Elijahs 18-second prayer (verses 36-37), the fire fell miraculously from heaven consuming Elijahs sacrifice, the people fell on their faces, and said, The Lord, he is the God; the Lord, he is the God (verse 39). The vision of the Transfiguration (Matt. 1627 through 17:9) gave the apostles Peter, James and John a preview of Christ coming in his kingdom-as he shall come. The indication is thus given that Moses and Elijah represented the heads, under Christ, of state or national world government (under Moses), and church or religious activity (under Elijah). These two men, like the fathers, Abraham, Isaac and Israel, will then be resurrected immortal, in power and glory. Certainly the indication is given us that, under Christ as King of kings, and under Christs top team-the fathers-will be Moses over all organized national and international government; and Elijah, over all organized church, religious and educational activity. Actually, the gospel and religious development is merely spiritual education. And it is significant that Elijah had organized and headed three schools or 337
colleges (I1 Kings 2 3 , 5; 4:38-at Bethel, Jericho and Gilgal) teaching Gods truth in a world corrupted by false pagan education.
multiplied his spiritual abilities ten times over is pictured as ruling over ten cities. The one who developed only half as much in Gods character and abilities is pictured as being given rule over five cities. The parable of the talents shows the same thing, but also we are to be judged by how well we do with what we have to do with. That is, one of lesser ability will be judged according to motivation, application, diligence and persistence according t o ability. To whom much-in natural ability, and spiritual gifts-is inherited and given, much will be required. The one of lesser ability stands just as good a chance for reward in Gods kingdom as the one of great ability-if he tries as hard. But what of all the gentile nations? Who will be given top positions of rule over them? There is strong indication-not a definite, specific statement-but indication, according t o principles and specific assignments that are revealed, that the prophet Daniel will be made king over them all, directly under Moses. What prophet-what man of God-did God send to be trained a t top-level government authority, in the worlds very first world empire? And what man refused to follow pagan ways and customs, even while serving next in authority to the king himself? What man proved loyal to God, and the worship of God, and obedient to the laws of God-even while serving a t the top in the first world empire? Why, of course, it was the prophet Daniel. At first thought, one might suppose Christ will put the apostle Paul a t the head-under Moses and under Christ-of all gentile nations. And indeed Paul qualified for high position over gentiles. But Daniel was thrown into almost daily contact with the king in the worlds first world government. And though that was human government, Daniel proved
339
completely loyal and obedient to God and Gods rule. He was used, to reveal to King Nebuchadnezzar, and immediate successors, that it is God who rules over all kingdoms. Daniel refused the kings rich food and delicacies-including what was unclean according to Gods health laws. He prayed three times a day to God, even though it meant being thrown into the den of lions. He trusted God to protect and deliver him from the lions. He gained knowledge and wisdom in the affairs and administration of government over nations. When God, through the prophet Ezekiel, named three of the most righteous men who ever lived, he named Daniel as one of them. The other two were Noah and Job (Ezek. 14:14,20). And it is evident that God will assign Noah and Job to offices of very great magnitude. More of that, later. God in his Word gave Daniel the assurance that he shall be in the kingdom of God, a t the time of resurrection (Dan. 12:13). It is an interesting possibility, in passing, t o consider that Daniels three colleagues in this Chaldean Empire service-Shadrach, Meshach and Abed-negomight serve as a team directly with and under Daniel, even as the three fathers very possibly may serve as a team directly with and under Christ himself. In fact, there are a number of such teams that appear to be possibilities. But what about Paul? As the twelve original apostles were sent to the lost house of Israel, Paul was the apostle to the gentiles. That is the key. Christ himself said specifically that each of the twelve shall be a king over one of the nations of Israel. It is inconceivable that Paul would be over no more than one gentile nation. It might even be inferred that Paul rated a little higher in ability and accomplishment than any one of
340
the twelve apostles. And, again, no gentile nation will be as great as one of the Israelite nations. The indication, then, seems to be that Paul will be given position over all gentile nations, b u t under Daniel. Of course there will be kings appointed by Christ over every gentile nation. And district rulers under them, and rulers over cities. There is no indication as to the identity of any of these, except that those apostles and evangelists who worked with and directly under Paul-Barnabas, Silas, Timothy, Titus, Luke, Mark, Philemon, etc.-undoubtedly will be given offices of importance. And what of other saints of that same time, in the first flush years of the Church, when its membership a t first multiplied in number of converts? And what of many converted since, and down t o our present day? We can mention, here, only what seems to be rather clearly indicated from what God has already revealed.
Acts 17:26). But men had refused to remain in the lands to which God had assigned them. That was the cause of the corruption and violence that ended that world. For 100 years Noah had preached Gods ways t o the people-but they didnt heed. At that time, even as today, that world faced a population explosion. It was when men began t o multiply on the face of the earth (Gen. 6:l). Jesus said, of our time, right now, But as the days of Noe [Noah] were, so shall also the coming of the Son of man be (Matt. 24:37)-or, as in Luke 17:26, And as it was in the days of Noe, so shall it be also in the days of the Son of man. That is, the days just before Christ returns. Today race wars, race hatreds, race riots and race problems are among t h e worlds greatest social troubles. Noah merely preached to people in his human lifetime. But Noah, in the resurrection, immortal, in power and glory, will be given the power to enforce Gods ways in regard to race. It seems evident that the resurrected Noah will head a vast project of the relocation of the races and nations, within the boundaries God has set, for their own best good, happiness and richest blessings. This will be a tremendous operation. It will require great and vast organization, reinforced with power to move whole nations and races. This time, peoples and nations will move where God has planned for them, and no defiance will be tolerated. What a paradox. People are going to be forced to be happy, to have peace, to find abundant and joyful living! Above, we said we would come back, later, t o Joseph, son of Israel and great-grandson of Abraham. Joseph became food administrator of the greatest
342
nation on earth of that time-Egypt. Joseph was synonymous with prosperity. And the Lord was with Joseph, and he was a prosperous man; and. . . the Lord made all that he did to prosper in his hand (Gen. 392-3). He was made actual ruler for the pharaoh of the worlds greatest nation. But his specialty was dealing with the economy-with prosperity. And what he did, he did Gods way. It seems evident, therefore, that Joseph will be made director of the worlds economy-its agriculture, its industry, its technology, and its commerce-as well as its money and monetary system. These systems will be on the international level, the same in every nation. Undoubtedly Joseph will develop a large and perfectly efficient organization of immortals made perfect, with and under him in this vast administration. This will be an administration that will eliminate famine, starvation, poverty. T h e r e will be no poverty-stricken slums. There will be universal prosperity! Another tremendous project on the worldwide international level will be that of rebuilding the waste places, and the construction of whatever really great and large buildings or structures Christ will require for the world he will create. And they shall build the old wastes, they shall raise up the former desolations, and they shall repair the waste cities, the desolations of many generations (Isa. 61:4). Job was the wealthiest and greatest man of the east (Job 1:3) and a noted builder. (Compare Job 3:13-14 with Gods challenge in Job 38:4-6.) He was so upright and perfect, God even dared Satan to find a flaw in his character. Actually, there was a terrible sin in his life-self-righteousness. But God brought him to
343
repentance. (See Job, chapters 38-42.) Once this man, of such strength of self-mastery that he could be so righteous in his own strength, was humbled, brought to reliance on God, filled with Gods Spirit-well, surely no man who ever lived could equal him as an engineer over vast stupendous world projects. Indication is strong, therefore, that Job will be director of worldwide urban renewal, rebuilding the waste places and the destroyed cities, not as they are now, but according to Gods pattern; vast engineering projects, such as dams and power plants-or whatever the ruling Christ shall decree. At least one other man seems indicated as a top assistant in this vast administration. That is Zerubbabel (Haggai, and Zech. 4). So much for the new world super-civilization on the national and international level. Now we come t o the world tomorrow on the individual level-the Church-the religion-the educational system.
shall be resurrected, rising first-changed t o Spirit immortality. We that are then alive, in Christ, shall be instantaneously changed to Spirit immortality, and caught up with the resurrected ones, t o meet the descending Christ in the air. We shall then be separated by immortality from the mortal humans on earth. Wherever Jesus is, from there, we shall be ever with him. Where, then, will he be? His feet shall stand that same day on the Mount of Olives (Zech. 14:4). It is after this that he separates the sheep (those who repent, believe, and receive his Holy Spirit) from the goats (those who rebel). This separation-this educating of converts for Gods kingdom-will continue throughout the entire thousand years of Christs reign on earth. Christ will give to all nations a new and pure language: For then will I turn t o the people a pure language, that they may all call upon the name of the Lord, to serve him with one consent (Zeph. 3:9). The pure truth of God will be proclaimed t o all people. No one will be deceived any longer. But the earth shall be full of the knowledge of the Lord, as the waters cover the sea (Isa. 11:9). Christ is the root of Jesse, father of David. To Christ, then, will the gentiles seek (Isa. 1l:lO). Christ will set his hand t o save all Israel (verse 11). (See also Romans 11:25-26.) But all this work of world evangelism-of spiritually saving the world (as a whole, not necessarily every individual but smely a majority)-will require, simultaneously, reeducating the world. One of the great problems facing the returned glorified Christ, will be t h a t of reeducating t h e supposedly educated. These minds-and they are,
345
indeed, the worlds finest and best minds-have become so perverted with false education that they will be unable to accept truth until they first unlearn error. And it is a t least ten times more difficult to unlearn error, firmly imbedded in the mind, than it is to start from scratch and learn new truth. It may actually take them longer to come to a knowledge of truth-to become truly educated-than the illiterate of this world. Gods inspired Word, the Holy Bible, is the foundation of knowledge. But they have been trained t o hold this true foundation in prejudiced contempt. Yes, indeed, the educating and reeducating of the world will be one of the most important tasks the kingdom of God will face, after Christ returns to rule. Today people follow the false and deceptive values. Their entire thinking will require a reorientation-a change of direction.
A Headquarters Church
We have seen that the earth, after this thousand-year period begins, will be as full of the true knowledge of God as the oceans are full of water (Isa. 11:9). How will this be brought about? The prophet Micah gives part of the answer: But in the last days it shall come to pass, that the mountain of the house of the Lord shall be established in the top of the mountains, and it shall be exalted above the hills; and people shall flow unto it (Mic. 4 l . :) Prophecy uses mountain as a symbol of a major nation, and hills as a symbol of smaller nations. In other words, the kingdom of God, the kingdom of resurrected immortals-the ruling kingdom-will be established in complete authority over the major nations (of mortals) and exalted above the small
346
nations-and people will flow to Gods kingdom. Now continue: And many nations shall come, and say, Come, and let us go up to the mountain of the Lord, and to the house of the God of Jacob; and he will teach us of his ways, and we will walk in his paths: for the law shall go forth of Zion [the Church], and the word of the Lord from Jerusalem. And he [Christ] shall judge among many people, and rebuke strong nations afar 0% and they shall beat their swords into plowshares, and their spears into pruninghooks: nation shall not lift up a sword against nation, neither shall they learn war any more (verses 2-3). This knowledge-this teaching-and even knowledge of Gods law-shall go forth from the Church-and from Jerusalem, the new world capital. Christ, himself, will be ruling from Jerusalem. Stationed there with Christ, under immediate direction of Elijah, it is indicated, will be those immortals chosen by Christ to constitute the Headquarters Church. Revelation 3:12 indicates those of t h e Philadelphia era will be pillars in t h a t Headquarters Church. Next, in this all-important Headquarters Church organization, working with and directly under Elijah, it appears, will be the resurrected John the Baptist. He came in the spirit and power of [Elijah] (Luke 1:17). Of him, Jesus said, Verily I say unto you, Among them that are born of women there hath not risen a greater than John the Baptist.. . (Matt. 11:ll).He was the Elijah prophesied to come (Matt. 11:7-11). Jesus said that no man who ever lived was greater than John the Baptist. Yet, even the least in the resurrected kingdom will be greater (Matt. 11:ll). It is
347
evident that John the Baptist will be placed in very high office. It. seems logical that he should be placed with, or immediately under, Elijah.
This could not possibly refer to John the Baptist. John the Baptist restored nothing, but called on people to repent in preparation for the First Coming of Jesus as a physical human. In the first few years of the New Testament Church, Jesus true gospel had been suppressed and supplanted with a false gospel-not the gospel of Christ (the kingdom of God) but mans false gospel about a Christ who did away with his Fathers commandments. Also Malachi 4 5 - 6 pictures the Elijah to come at the very end of the Church age-at a time when, if this end-time message were not proclaimed, the glorified Christ would come and smite the world with total destruction. (The word curse in this verse is translated from the Hebrew, which in Moffatts translation is given the meaning total destruction.) Education in the World Tomorrow This Headquarters Church, at Christs own world capital of Jerusalem, then, undoubtedly will be given the administration of the worlds new system of education. Also the indication is that the teaching of spiritual truth-of the true gospel, the spiritual conversion of the world-will be directed, worldwide, from this Headquarters Church, under Elijah and the overall direct supervision of Jesus Christ. The principal purpose for which Christ is returning to earth is to spiritually develop in humanity godly character, and to save the world. Most religious people, ministers, and evangelists (fundamentalist) have supposed that this time, now, is the only day of salvation. The verse of Scripture they rely on is a mistranslation (I1 Cor. 6 2 ) . It should read a day of salvation, not the (quoted from Isaiah 4953, where it is a not the). If Christ had been trying to save the world, he would
349
MYSTERYOFTHEAGES
have saved the world. It hasnt been saved. God doesnt use a babylon of confused, disagreeing religious organizations, divided into hundreds of different concepts of theological doctrine, as his instruments. But the real world evangelism will be administered by this Headquarters Church, composed of resurrected immortals, under direct personal supervision of Christ himself. One thing there will not be in the millennia1 Headquarters Church is a doctrinal committee of intellectual scholars to decide whether Christs teachings are true doctrines. There was no such doctrinal committee in the first century Headquarters Church at Jerusalem. All teaching came from Christ through the apostles-and a few times Christ communicated to apostles via the prophets (of which there are none in Gods Church today since the Bible for our time is complete). Gods Church today, as in the first century, receives its teachings from the living Christ, through an apostle, just as in A.D. 31. One other tremendous organizational function will be directed from this Headquarters Church-that of direction of all the local churches over the world. These churches will be composed of those who become converted-begotten of God by receiving his Holy Spirit-though still mortal.
there will be many church congregations in every city, others scattered through rural areas. There will be district superintendents over areas, and pastors, elders, deacons and deaconesses in every local church. This, then, gives an insight into how the world will be organized. This shows how a super world government can, and will, be established on earth. The very purpose of the Church of this present time is to provide Gods training school or teachers college t o train in spiritual knowledge, education and godly character, to supply all the positions at the beginning of this wonderful 1,000-year reign of Christ on earth. After the end of this coming millennial rule of Christ on earth, will come the final judgment. I have mentioned in this book that at the time of the first Adams sin, God closed off from humanity as a whole the tree of life symbolizing Gods gift of his Holy Spirit and begettal of immortal God-life, until Christ the second Adam shall have replaced Satan on earths throne and come to reign over all nations on earth. Meanwhile, we have covered how the prophets were a pre-foundation of the Church of God. And the apostle Peter mentioned (I Pet. 4:17) that the JUDGMENT had begun with the Church. Those God has called to come to him through Jesus Christ during this Church age have been here and now judged, during this life. B u t judgment has not yet come t o the world. Does that mean the world is freed to commit sin? Not a t all. God allows people to sin, but they are not now as yet judged for their sins. After the Millennium Following the millennial reign of Christ and the Church on earth, however, shall come the time of Gods
351
J U D G M E N T on this world. A criminal may have committed a great crime-even murder. But until caught, and brought to trial before a judge, he has not yet been judged or condemned. In the final judgment, with Christ on the judgment seat, every human who has lived in this world shall be brought back t o life (Rev. 2011-12). They shall then give account for their sins committed in their first life. The dead IN Christ a t the time of Jesus Second Coming shall be resurrected to immortal God-life if they shall have died, and those still living who are IN Christ at his coming and led by his Holy Spirit shall be changed instantly into immortal God-life. They shall rule and teach with and under Christ during the thousand years. But all others who have died shall not live again until the end of the millennium (Rev. 2 0 5 ) . T h e 37th chapter of Ezekiel also shows t h e resurrection at the time of the judgment. This 37th chapter is the prophecy of the dry bones. The Bible itself interprets these dry bones in verse 11where it says these dry bones are the House of Israel: . . . behold, they say, Our bones are dried, and our hope is lost.. . . Like the prophecy says: Again he said unto me, Prophesy upon these bones, and say unto them, 0 ye dry bones, hear the word of the Lord. Thus saith the Lord God unto these bones; Behold, I will cause breath to enter into you, and ye shall live: and I will lay sinews upon you, and will bring up flesh upon you, and cover you with skin, and put breath in you, and ye shall live; and ye shall know that I am the Lord (verses 4-6). Next this prophecy tells of the Great White Throne Judgment when this whole house of Israel, who sinned SO greatly against God, shall be resurrected. The prophecy continues: SOI prophesied as I was commanded: and as I prophesied, there was a noise, and
352
behold a shaking, and the bones came together, bone to his bone. And when I beheld, lo, the sinews and the flesh came up upon them, and the skin covered them above: but there was no breath in them. Then said he unto me, Prophesy unto the wind, prophesy, son of man, and say to the wind, Thus saith the Lord God; Come from the four winds, 0 breath, and breathe upon these slain, that they may live. SO I prophesied as he commanded me, and the breath came into them, and they lived, and stood up upon their feet, an exceeding great army (verses 7-10). This shows being brought back to mortal life, sustained by breathing of air, just as in their original life. That is, mortal life-still unconverted. Then God says, Behold, 0 my people, I will open your graves, and cause you to come up out of your graves, and bring you into the land of Israel. This is the resurrection in the Great White Throne Judgment. All the ancient Israelites are resurrected mortal, precisely as in their first life. Then what? And ye shall know that I am the Lord, when I have opened your graves, 0 my people, and brought you up out of your graves, and shall put my spirit in you, and ye shall live, and I shall place you in your own land: then shall ye know that I the Lord have spoken it, and performed it, saith the Lord (verses 13, 14). In other words, in the Great White Throne Judgment after the millennium, Old Testament Israel will be resurrected; then they shall come to know the Lord. Gods knowledge will come to them. The resurrected then will read this: And there shall ye remember your ways, and all your doings, wherein ye have been defiled; and ye shall lothe yourselves in your own sight for all your evils that ye have committed. And ye shall know that I am the Lord, when I have wrought with you for my names sake, not according to your
353
wicked ways, nor according to your corrupt doings, 0 ye house of Israel, saith the Lord God (Ezek. 20:43-44). Then upon this repentance, notice again in Ezek. 37:14: And shall put my spirit in you, and ye shall live, and I shall place you in your own land: then shall ye know that I the Lord have spoken it, and performed it, saith the Lord. Thus, in the Great White Throne Judgment, they will come to know that Christ the Savior had come and died for them. And upon their repentance they shall receive the Holy Spirit and with it salvation and eternal life. All who had lived, previously unjudged, not only Israel, but of all nations, will be resurrected MORTAL, physical, as they were in their first life up to the time of death. Those in this judgment will be mortals. They will then give account and be judged. Concerning this Great White Throne Judgment Jesus said: The men of Nineveh shall rise in judgment with this generation, and shall condemn it: because they repented a t t h e preaching of Jonas; and, behold, a greater than Jonas is here. The queen of the south shall rise up in the judgment with this generation, and shall condemn it: for she came from the uttermost parts of the earth to hear the wisdom of Solomon; and, behold, a greater than Solomon is here (Matt. 12:41-42; also in Luke 11:31-32). Also: But I say unto you, that it shall be more tolerable in that day for Sodom, than for that city. . . . But it shall be more tolerable for Tyre and Sidon a t the judgment, than for you (Luke 1012, 14). There will be punishments. Those who have sinned little will be beaten with few stripes, but those who have sinned greatly, knowing Gods will, with many stripes (Luke 12:47-48). But the penalty for sin is DEATH in the final last
354
judgment. Since all have sinned, all shall be judged guilty and sentenced. But they shall learn that Jesus Christ paid their penalty in their stead. And in repentance, demonstrated by performance, they will be given an opportunity yet a t that time to choose LIFE, and be made immortal. What a merciful God is the Creator, whose mercy is as great toward us as the heavens are high above the earth. And he is able to remove our transgressions from us as far as the east is from the west (Ps. 103:12). BUTTHERE IS MORE! MUCH MORE!
In this psalm, David continued showing specifically that God has now placed in subjection under man the solid earth, the earths atmosphere or air, and the sea. But now the writer of the book of Hebrews is inspired to expand Davids prophecy to add something radically different-something to happen in the world to come! This revealed knowledge of Gods purpose for mankind-of mans incredible awesome potentialstaggers the imagination. Science knows nothing of it-no religion reveals it, so far as I know-and certainly higher education is in utter ignorance of it. Nevertheless, it is what God says he has prepared for them that love him (I Cor. 29-10). I have said before that God revealed necessary knowledge to our first parents, but they didnt believe what he said! Some 4,000 years later, Jesus Christ the second Adam appeared on earth with a message direct from God the Father in heaven, revealing the same necessary knowledge-but only a handful-a hundred and twenty-believed what he said, though many professed to believe on him (as in John 830-31,37-38, 40,45-46). Today science, religion and education still do not believe WHAT HE SAID. But now lets see what is said in this passage in Hebrews, beginning where Hebrews leaves off quoting the eighth Psalm: Thou hast put all things in subjection under his [mans] feet. For in that he [God] put all in subjection under him [man], he [God] left NOTHING that is not put under him (Heb. 28). Is it possible God could mean what he says (all things)? Nothing excluded? In the first chapter, the Moffatt translation of the Bible renders the Greek word translated all things as the universe (verse 8).
356
In other words, for those willing to believe what God says, he says that he has decreed the entire universe-with all its galaxies, its countless suns and planetseverything-will be put under mans subjection. But wait a moment!Before you disbelieve, read the next words in the same eighth verse: But now we see not yet all things [the endless universe] put under him [man]. Remember (verse 5), this is speaking of the world to come-not todays world. But what do we see now, today? But we see Jesus, who was made a little lower than the angels [or, for a little while lower] for the suffering of death, crowned with glory and honour. Man, other than Christ, is NOT YET crowned with glory and honour. But see how Christ is already crowned with glory and honor. Continue: For i t became him, for whom are all things [the entire universe] and by whom are all things, in bringing many sons unto glory, t o make the captain of their salvation perfect through sufferings.. . . for which cause he [Christ] is not ashamed to call them brethren (verses 10-11). In other words, Christians having Gods Spirit are joint heirs with Christ t o INHERIT all that Christ already has inherited. He is now in glory! He has already inherited the entire universe. He sustains it by his power. Man, if he is converted, having Gods Holy Spirit (Rom. 89), is now only an HEIR-not yet a possessor. But see now how Christ already has been crowned with glory and honor-and is already in possession-has already inherited. Begin with Hebrews, chapter 1: God.. . hath in these last days spoken unto us by his Son, whom he hath appointed heir of all things [the entire universe], by whom also he made the worlds; who being the brightness of his glory, and the express image of his person, and upholding [sustaining] all things [the
357
entire universe] by the word of his power.. . (Heb. 1:1-3). T h e living Christ already sustains the entire universe by his limitless divine power. The passage continues t o show his superiority over the angels-he is the begotten and born Son of God-angels are merely individually created beings. Angels are now administering spirits (invisible to us), ministering to us-to us who are now in lower status than angels-but who are heirs of salvation, when we, like Christ, shall become born sons of God (Heb. 1:4-14).
of God, they are the sons of God.. . . The Spirit itself beareth witness with our spirit, that we are the children of God: and if children, then heirs; heirs of God, and joint-heirs with Christ.. . also glorified together. For I reckon that the sufferings of this present time are not worthy t o be compared with the glory which shall be revealed in u s . . . (Rom. 814-18). Continue, Revised Standard Version: For the creation waits with eager longing for the revealing of the sons of God; for the creation [all the suns, planets, stars, moons] was subjected to futility, not of its own will but by the will of him who subjected it in hope; because the creation itself will be set free from its bondage to decay and obtain the glorious liberty of the children of God. We know that the whole creation [stars, suns and moons now in decay and futility] has been groaning in travail together until now; and not only the creation, but we ourselves [we Spirit-begotten humans], who have the first fruits of the Spirit [the very FEW now being called t o salvation-the firstfruits], groan inwardly as we wait for the [birth] as sons (verses 19-23). What an amazing marvelous revelation of knowledge! No more amazing, awesome, eye-opening passage could be written! It is so astonishingly revealing, one doesnt fully grasp it just reading quickly through. First I quoted from verse 29 of Romans 8 stating Christ WAS the firstborn of MANY BRETHREN. In Hebrews 1,we see that Christ, the first human t o be born by a resurrection from the dead, has been glorified and now sustains the entire universe. He is our Pioneer who has gone on ahead. At his return to earth in power and glory, those who have been converted and received Gods Holy Spirit shall be born into the God
359
family by a resurrection. Then the entire universe will be put into subjection UNDER them! Then, from Romans S, i f we have and are led by the Holy Spirit of God, we shall be raised t o Spirit composition and immortality in the God family even as Christ was in A.D. 31 upon his resurrection. Now once again from verse 19: For the creation waits with eager longing for the revealing of the sons of God (RSV). This shall happen after the time of the resurrection, when those who are human actually become-by a resurrection or instantaneous change from mortal flesh to Spirit immortality-sons of God. Astonishing? -Entire Universe to B e Renewed Now understand please. W h y should t h e whole universe-the creation-be waiting with eager longing for the actual birth and appearing of all these sons of God, to be born into the family of God? The following verses portray a universe filled with planets in decay and futility-yet as if subjected now to this dead state in hope! Because the creation itself [the universe not now capable of sustaining life] will be set free from its bondage to decay and obtain the glorious liberty of the children of God. How did all the planets fall into the bondage of decay? Surely God did not so create them! Decay signifies a state or condition caused by degeneration and decomposition from a previous undecayed state. God, then, created these planets in a state of NoNdecay. But something caused deterioration t o set in. What could have caused all this bondage t o decay? It cannot be the state in which God created them! Everything we read in Gods revealed Word about Gods
360
creation shows it to have been a perfect creation. The earth was first created a perfect creation of glorious beauty. We see that angels inhabited the earth prior to the creation of man. Angels, who were perfect from the creation until iniquity or lawlessness was found in them, caused the whole surface of the earth to turn into a state of decay, confusion and emptiness, as shown in chapter 2. Could the whole universe with its myriad of other planets have been created for the eventual purpose of sustaining life? We are not told specifically by revelation in Gods Word whether it was or not, but what we are told throws additional light on why God decided to create man! Continue this passage in Romans 8:22: We know that the whole creation [universe] has been groaning in travail together until now. Consider that the creation is compared to a mother about to be delivered of her child. The creation is pictured as groaning in travail in hope (verse 20), awaiting the birth by resurrection to immortality, of the children of God. It is as if the creation is the mother and God is the father. Anyway the whole thrust of the passage is that when we (converted humans) are born of God-then having the power and glory of God-we are going to do as God did when this earth had been laid waste and empty-Hebrew, tohu and bohu (Gen. 1:2). Christ, who renewed the face of the earth (Ps. 10430),was renewing what had been destroyed by the rebellion of the sinning angels. What these wonderful passages imply and indicate goes far beyond the amount specifically revealed. This passage indicates precisely what all astronomers and scientific evidence indicate-the suns are as balls of fire, giving out light and heat; but the planets, except for this earth, are in a state of death, decay and
361
futility-but not forever-waiting until converted humans are BORN the children of God; born into the very divine family of God, forming the kingdom of God. Jesus gospel was the kingdom of God. What I am showing you here is that Christs gospel of the kingdom actually includes all this knowledge here revealed-even the whole universe is to be ruled by us, who, with God the Father and Christ, become the kingdom of God. God is first of all Creator, but God is also Ruler. And he is Educator, who reveals knowledge beyond and outside t h e scope of h u m a n m i n d of itself t o comprehend! P u t together all these scriptures I have used in this chapter, and you begin to grasp the incredible human potential. Our potential is to be born into the God family, receiving total power! We are t o be given jurisdiction over the entire universe! What are we going to do then? These scriptures indicate we shall impart life to billions and billions of dead planets, as life has been imparted to this earth. We shall create, as God directs and instructs. We shall rule through all eternity! Revelation 21 and 22 show there will then be no pain, no suffering, no evil, because we shall have learned to choose Gods way of good. It will be an eternal life of accomplishment, constantly looking forward in super-joyous anticipation to new creative projects, and still looking back also on accomplishments with happiness and joy over what shall have been already accomplished. We shall never grow tired and weary. Always alive-full of joyous energy, vitality, exuberant life and strength and power!
throne over the whole universe will be established on this earth. Notice in I Corinthians 15:24, after speaking of the various resurrections, it is recorded: Then cometh the end, when he shall have delivered up the kingdom to God, even the Father; when he shall have put down all rule and all authority and power. In Revelation 21:3:And I heard a great voice out of heaven saying, Behold, the tabernacle of God is with men, and he will dwell with them, and they shall be his people, and God himself shall be with them, and be their God. And further in Revelation 22:3: And there shall be no more curse: but the throne of God and of the Lamb shall be in it; and his servants shall serve him. When it speaks of God and the LAMB, LAMB the represents Christ and God refers to the FATHER. Finally the at-one-ment shall be completed. Both God the Father and the Son Jesus Christ in us and we united with them as the one great supreme God family. How wonderful beyond the ability of words to express is the glory of God and his wonderful purpose actually now in progress. Praise, honor and glory be to God and to Jesus Christ forever and forever. With Gods great master plan of seven thousand years finally completed-the mystery of the ages finally revealed, and with the re-creating of the vast universe and eternity lying ahead, we come finally to THE BEGINNING,
363
Scripture Index
EPHESIANS ACTS 1 1 38 :5 22-3 56-57 2:18 57 8 51 810 52
221-22 10
CHAPTER 1 :
403, 9-109
JEREMIAH 1 7 13 : EZEKIEL 184, 20 22 DANIEL 129, 10 6 MALACHI
919
JOB
3 : 45 87
PSALMS 339 44 ISAIAH
I CORINTHIANS 11 53
1 CORINTHIANS 1
1:12-13,15-1744 1 1 46 :5
HEBREWS 7 3 42 : I JOHN 13 56 : 3 2 43
623 22
GALATIANS
1:11-12, 15-1729
364
Scripture Index
57-8 55-56
141-11 80 143-678 147-879 1412 69, 79-80 1412-1481 1412-1592 1413-1580 4518 76
EZEKIEL 26 81 27 82 28 73, 81 282-882 2811-1283 2812-1792 2813 83 2 : 4 91 81 2815 77, 84-85, 91 2816-1786 DANIEL 816 69 921 69 102-1369 1021 69 121 69, 81 121-280 ZECHARIAH 410 68 MATTHEW 929 65 1810 68 LUKE 1 1 69 :9 126 69 JOHN 1 1 5 60, 94 :-, 1 1 94 :4 517 60 ACE4 215 68
I CORINTHIANS 1433 76
1524 95
I1 CORINTHIANS 211 95 43-4 59 EPHESIANS 2 2 59 39 94 6 59 PHILIPPIANS 25 87 COLOSSIANS 1~15-16 59 1:16-17 94 I1 THESSALONIANS 23-4 82-83 HEBREWS 159 1:3-10,13-1461-62 2 62 27 60
1 : 55 7s
CHAPTER 2:
II CHRONICLES
169 68
365
189-1982 21:12 68
CHAPTER 3:
6 4 122, 132-133 :4
ACTS 229,34 126 1 : Z 126 32 ROMANS
CHAPTER 4:
MYSTERY OF CIVILIZATION
GENESIS 421 145-146 6 2 147, 148 6 5 146 6 9 147 8 4 150 108-9 150, 152 11~1-2 150 1 : 151, 152 14 1 : 152 16 1 : 152 18
5s 118 :
1:l 135 1 l 2 99-100 :12 101 : 1 3 101 : 1 2 , 21, 24 102, 104 :0 1 2 103 :6
2 114-115 27 102, 104, 108 322-24 120, 122
510 130 623 124, 126 89, 1 , 14 133 1 816 111 1 : 3 135 13 1310 118
I CORINTHIANS 2 112 29 111-112 2:10-11 112, 118 214 113 319 113 15 135 1522 123 1522-23134 1545-4611 1 EPHESIANS 2 2 117 PHILIPPIANS 2 5 117 COLOSSIANS 127 117 I TIMOTHY 213-14 117 HEBREWS 927 123, 131 I PETER 417 133 REVELATION 129 98, 122 138 102 2011-12134 2011-13 135
11 147 7
EXODUS 20:4-5 153 2328-29150 LEVITICUS 2221 147 DEUTERONOMY 328 149 I CHRONICLES 1629 138 EZRA 1:l 144 PSALMS 10430 138 1271 146 ISAIAH 1414 151 JEREMIAH 718 153 MATTHEW 724-27 146 1 : 7 144 12
PSALMS 10430 101 ECCLESIASTES 9 5 127 95-6125 910 126 127 127 ISAIAH 28:9-10100 591-2128 JOEL 228 132 MATTHEW 4 131 1 : 5 105 12 MARK 77, 9 13 134 , LUKE 1022 128 JOHN 313 126 528-29 127
366
Scripture Index
2414.31-41 158 2421-22 149 2438 147
JOHN 4 2 4 153 ROMANS 1 2 3 153 5 1 0 145 I CORINTHIANS 1522 143 GALATIANS 5 2 1 148 EPHESIANS 2 2 143 HEBREWS 9 2 7 142
11 PETER 2 5 147, 153
LEVITICUS 26 181, 185 261-2 176-177 263-4 176-177 2 6 6 176-177 267-8 176-177 2 6 9 177 2614-17 177 2618 177 2619 190 2230 191 NUMBERS 3351-53, 55 172
11 KINGS 166 160
MALACHI 38-10 190 MATTHEW 24 196 2414 196 2421-22 197 MARK 13 196 LUKE 21 196 ROMANS 2 4 3 175 5 5 175 158 166 GALATIANS 38, 16 164 329 165 EPHESIANS 2 2 0 174 HEBREWS 8 6 , l O 174 11~13-16 162 I PETER 2 9 165 REVELATION 13 182 17 182
CHAPTER 6:
EZRA 9 2 173 1010-11 173 PSALMS 3310-19 190 ISAIAH 4321 163 JEREMIAH 3 2 0 172 25~31-32195 30~5-7195-196 31~31174 EZEKIEL 2226 191 DANIEL 2 181-182 7 182 121-2 197 AMOS 9 9 186 MICAH 57-15 188 5 9 189
MYSTERY OF ISRAEL
GENESIS 12~1-2 161 121-3 163-164 171-5 164-165 176 165 177-9 165 2218 164 2 4 3 167 48 186 4814-16 184, 195 48~18-20185 4922 186 EXODUS 198 172 31~12-18180
367
DEUTERONOMY 6 1 6 218 PSALMS 111:lO 231 ISAIAH 7 1 4 210, 224 96-7 213, 27.4 289-10, 13 252 4 9 8 253 5214 212 53:5 212, 224 EZEKIEL 37 239 40 246 JOEL 2 2 8 253 MALACHI 31 222 31-5 290 45-6 290 MATTHEW 1:21 214 213-15 217 4 211-219 4 2 3 222 131-9 254 1310-17 232, 254 1318-23 254 1618 207-208, 213-214 17:ll 290 2 4 5 250 2414 251, 289, 291 2421-22 291 2429-30 291 25 254 2R50 212 MARK 1:l 222 1:4 225 1:14-15 222
314, 16 221 77-9 271 LUKE 1:31-33 210 1911-27 253 2449 233 JOHN 1:42 221 35-6 225 3 8 225 4:24 263 6 4 4 215, 229, 241, 246, 246-247, 263 737-39 209, 230 830-44 227 1516, 19 222 1711-17 247 1836 210 1837 209-210
ACTS
2 2 215-216 2 4 7 264 4 2 3 266 6 1 278 738 208 8 281 8 1 218 11:18 238 1427 290 2028 248 ROMANS 5 5 214 5 1 0 240 8 7 239 8 1 1 261 8:16 257, 260 8 1 7 261 8:29 239 11:16 252 11:25, 30-32 235-236
I CORINTHIANS 1 249 1:2 248 1:lO 246
2 1 1 260 31-3 260 311 230 1032 248 11:16 249 11:22 248 12 206 121, 4-6, 11-13 243 125-6 266 1213 217 1218 246, 264 1220 244 1225 244 12:27 230 1419 216 1428 216 1 4 3 3 276 1 5 9 248 1 5 2 3 239 1 5 4 5 209 15:45-50 226 1549-53 261 1 6 1 244
I1 CORINTHIANS 1:l 248 2:12 290 3:6 258 43-4 198-199, 203 4 4 216 6 2 253 11:3 279 11~3-4, 13-15 250, 272 11:28 244
368
Scripture Index
219-21 222, 230, 234, 246 2 2 0 230 3 9 211 4 1 1 244 411-13 262 4 1 3 256 415-16 246 5 2 3 208, 222, 230
PHILIPPIANS 2 5 238
321 236
510 233, 237 12 272 1 2 9 203, 216, 234, 249, 272 13 272 1315 284 1 4 4 253 17 272 1 7 5 249, 272 2011-12 273
I THESSALONIANS 2 1 4 249
I1 THESSALONIANS 1:4 249
CHAPTER 7:
I PETER 2 2 4 212
II PETER 1:4 260 3 1 8 262 I JOHN 2 4 277 3 4 274
I1 JOHN 10 282
JUDE 3 282 REVELATION 29-10 285 226-27 236 31-6 289 37-13 289-290
369
EZEKIEL 1414,20 340 16 325 2043-44353-354 239, 22 325 3423-24338 36 319 369-11 319 3633-353 19 37 352-353 3714 353, 354 3724-25 338 DANIEL 1:17 297 2 302 228 297 228-35 298 236 299 237-39299-300 240 300 244 301 7 294, 301 722 310 1213 340 AMOS 413 316 MICAH 41-3 311-312,
346-347
ACTS 13 296 : 1:9-11 305, 309 232 305 319-21 305 1726 342 18:21 327 198 296 206 327 20:16 328 2025 296 2823,31 296 ROMANS 14 358 : 8 7 328 89 357, 358 811 358 811, 14 309 814-18 358-359 819 360 819-23 359 820,22 361 8:29 358-359 11~25-26 345 1411 324
NAHUM 1:15 316 ZEPHANIAH 3 9 320, 345 HAGGAI 1-2344 26-8 321 2 8 323 ZECHARIAH 4 344 141-4307 144 316, 345
1 1 347 :7 k31-32304 638 323-324 91-2295-296 109 295 1012, 14 354 11:31-32 354 1247-48354 1328 309, 336 17:21 294 17:26 342 1911-27338 1912-27305, 326 1917-19326
I CORINTHIANS 29-10356 5 8 328 15:3-4 305 1524 363 1550-54309 168 328
I1 CORINTHIANS 6 2 349 11:13-15 306-307
370
Scripture Index
1618 316 17 301, 302 1 : 302 7l 173 302 178 301 1712 301 1714 307 1715 302 19 310 197 302 1911-16303 1914 307 1915 305 1916 305 201-3310 205 352 2011-12352 2 362 1 21:3 363 22 362 223 363
371
Subject Index
ABORTION to destroy an embryo or fetus in a mothers uterus is to murder a potential God Being, 110 ABRAHAM (ABRAM) dual promises made to, 163-164 man of destiny, 160-163 one-third kept not their first estate, 46 one-third sinned and became demons, 72-74 personal experiences with, 62-64, R A - I = R . placed on earth before the creation of man, 46,73 possessed immense powers of mind, 70 sons of God by creation, 60 why created, 60-62
ADAM believed Satan, 38 cut himself and his family off from God, 33 disobeyed his Maker, 117 ANIMALS had the opportunity to unseat are souls, 104 Satan, 123 devoid of human spirit, 105 rejected Gods law and have no awareness of God or of government, 119-120 spiritual knowledge, 107 sons of, separated and given each share the same breath of life with his own inheritance, 149 man, 109 the first created man, 33 took to himself the fruit of the ARMSTRONG HERBERT W. forbidden tree, 33 began in-depih study of Bible in what if he had taken of the tree of summer of 1926, ix life?, 116-117, 140-141 Bible had been an enigma to, as a willingly, not wilfully, sinned, 117, youth, ix 141 brought by circumstances to a mission God had in store for ANGEL, AN him, 13 reveals to Daniel that the words business of, disintegrates, 17-18 given to the prophet are sealed challenged on theory of evolution, till the time of the end, 6 ix, 18-20 confronted with a mind-disturbine ANGELS challenge, ix are immortal spirits, 46 craved understanding, viii are invisible agents, 62, 68-69 determined to find whether there assigned great responsibilities, is absolute oroof of existence of 69-71 God, x each individually created, 60 discovers Bible to be a coded book, Gods purpose for, 90.91 xi Jesus, as a human being, was made marriage of, to Loma Dillon, a t a little lower than the angels, stake over question of Sunday 60 observance, ix may have dwelt on earth for never heard deepest mysteries millions of years, 46 explained in church when a messengers from God, 59 youth, viii mystery of, with evil spirits, is offers himself to Christ as a living second in order, 3 sacrifice, to use as Christ willed, needed to develop perfect, holy 27 character, 69 reared in Protestant church
372
S u b j e c t Index (Quaker) until age 18, viii, 13-14, why Nicodemus misunderstood, 224-225 203-205 studied works of Darwin, Huxley, Haeckel et al, ix CATHOLIC CHURCH, ROMAN supposed the source for Sunday its teachings rejected by observance was the Bible. ix scientifically oriented minds in vistas of spiritual knowledge and recent centuries, 2 understanding become clear to, with Protestantism, has dominated xi thinking of Western world, 2 why impelled to write this book CHARACTER late in life, ix definition of, 69 would never have discovered the must he developed over time by great Biblical truths by himself, experience, 69-71 12 one quality that Gods creative ARMSTRONG, LOMA DULLON) powers could not create instantly in a matter of days after her in either angels or humans, 69 marria e had a dream that CHRIST (see also JESUS CHRIST) seemeflike a vision, 15-17 humanitys sinbearer, 124-125 wife of Herbert W. Armstrong humans must yield to believing (1917-1967), 15 Jesus the, 5 BELIEF IN CHRIST is in the image-form and shape-of God, 44 no one can have the Holy Spirit without an implicit, 5 not possible to have the Holy Spirit without belief in, 5 BIBLE, HOLY the firstfruits, 135 authority of, questioned, ix the second Adam, 128 cannot he read like any other hook, to come again to rule over all 5 nations, 9, 303-304 carelessly taken for granted by who can come to Jesus, 263 many, x why the second Adam, 132-134 coded book, x-xi worshipped in vain by millions, 134 different translations useful, 23 CHRISTIAN(S) Gods own written revelation, 3 called to he saints, 309-310 interprets itself, xii is basic mystery that reveals all true ones, draftees-not volunteers, 229-230 other mysteries, 3 what about individual not intended to be generally Chrjstians? 270-272 understood until latter half of what IS a real, 133-134 twentieth century, xi positive proof of, found, 25 CHURCH, THE positive proof of, sought, x a Teachers College, 228-229 preserved revelation of paramount an English word derived from the mysteries confronting all Greek word ekklesia, meaning humanity, x called-out-ones, 199 the Word in print, 5 commissioned to proclaim what why so little understood, xi gospel? 206 written as if it were like a jigsaw how organized, 241-245 puzzle, xi-xii, 5 in relation to past history, 205-206 institution of, is sixth basic BORN AGAIN mystery, 4 Jesus was the first person, 57 is it a building? 199 truly converted Christians shall be, not founded until Christ ascended, at the resurrection, 57 230 BORN AGAIN Question of Old Testament times, 208-209 misunderstood by modern real purpose of, 200-202, 253-256, theologians, 224 265- 266 what Jesus really said, miritual mother of human 224-226 converts, 265
373
still carnal, 256-258 the first harvest 232-235 the temple to which Christ shall come, 245-247 true name of, 247-249 what kind of institution? 202-203 why called first, 239-241, 252-253 why Jesus founded it, 207-208, 226-228 CHURCH OF GOD an organized spiritual organism to do Christs work, 268 Herbert W. Armstrong finds the one true, 30 infiltrated during first century by another gospel, xii its teaching and belief, 273-275 modern methods provided to do the work of God, 268-270 revelation of mysteries lost in earlier centuries even to, x-xi seven eras of, 282-292 synoptic history of the, 275-292 the name of the Church as an institution, 247-249 CIVILIZATION antediluvian world, 147-148 at the crossroads today, 156-158 began after the Flood, a t Babylon, 151-154 beginning of, 145-146 founded on city life, 149-150 fourth basic mystery, 4 man-built and Satan inspired, 139 tower of Babel symbolic of, 151-154 CLERGY (see also TRADITIONAL CHRISTIANITY) interpret scripture to say what they have been taught and believe, xii read an already-bclieved false teaching into each particular scripture, xii well-meaning men among, received their teaching from other men, xii COMMANDMENTS Christ is supposed t o have done away with his Fathers, 134 good understanding comes from doing Gods, 6 traditional Christianity has generally denied Gods, 6 CONVERSION not merely receiving Christ, 238-239
thorough one necessary for the Church, 237-238 CREATOR, A DIVINE chief characteristic of God, the Personage who became the Father, 43-44 how Jesus Christ was, 43-44 preexistence of, generally rejected by rational, scientifically oriented minds, 2 reveals himself in the Bible, 3 theory of evolution invented to explain away the need for, 2 DANIEL T H E PROPHET could not understand much of what was given to him to write as part of the Bible, 6 DARWIN, SIR CHARLES co-inventor of theory of survival of the fittest, 2 d ! i unsure of his own theory,
L
his writings appear convincing on the surface, 20 DAVID, KING ancestor of Herbert W. Armstrong on mothers side, 13 is not ascended into the heavens, 23,126 plagued by questions about man, x DEATH the wages of sin, 22 DEMONS followed Lucifer into rebellion, 74 origin of, 93-94 the angels that sinned against the government of God, 74 EARTH, T H E angels t o add their own workmanship to surface of, 77 became waste and empty as a result of the sin of angels, 74-75, 88.99, 101 how sin entered, 91 not created waste and empty, 76 not initially a completed creation, 77 planet suffers cataclysm, 92 surface of, renewed for man, 101-103 to become universe headquarters, 84
374
Subject Zndex
EDUCATION, HIGHER based on memory training, 23 diffusion of, did not begin until well after invention of printing, 2 emphasizes acceptance of what is taught, 23-24 eenerallv denies the invisible and the spiritual, 36 has not taught who and what God is, 3 has sought to erase the mystery about God by giving virtual unanimous acceDtance to theorv of evolution, 1 in the days of the Greek philosophers, 34-35 in the Western world today, 35 knows nothing about the spiritual nature of world evils. 113 materialistic, 35-36, 97 no longer considers the possibility of a designed and planned creation, 97 remains in utter ignorance of the mystery of mankind and of human civilization, 97-98 teaches nothing about spiritual life and problems, 113
I
challenge on theory of, ix evolved in thinking, yet ignorant, minds filled with intellectual vanity, 2 invented in an effort to explain a creation without a Creator, 2 positive proof of fallacy of, 21, 104 EARTH, THE a t first was the abode of angels, 46 ETERNAL LIFE a gift of God, 22 FALSE GOSPELS began to be preached as a counterfeit bv the middle of the first century A.D., 53-54 inspired.by Simon Magus, 52 not one IS right, 294-295 proclaimed to the world hy a counterfeit Christianity, 278-279
FAMILY OF GOD composed so far of only two Persons, 50 will he composed, at the first resurrection, of all who shall become born sons of God, 51 will be composed of all who are ELIJAH TO COME, T H E (see also being filled and led by Gods JOHN THE BAPTIST Spirit, 51 foretold by the prophet Malachi, 9, will rule all nations with the 348-349 government of God restored, 51 one who prepares the way before Christs Second Coming, 9 FESTIVALS, SEVEN ANNUAL refers to John the Baptist as a all will keep Gods festivals, forerunner, 9 329-330 commanded forever, 201-202 ERROR (see also REPENTANCE) confession of, to he followed by reveal Gods master plan, 230-232 revealed to ancient Israel, 201-202, believing Christ, 5 of belief and conviction must he 230-232 confessed, 5 FLOOD, T H E the most difficultmatter for a brought worldwide termination of human being to admit, 5 early civilization, 72 intermarriage before, 147-148 EVE believed Satan, 38 GOD was deceived by Satan, whereas a divine family since the begettal Adam was not, 117 wife of the first man Adam, 38 of the Word as Jesus Christ, 43, 50-51, 57, 94 EVIL SPIRITS (see also DEMONS) a kingdom from all eternity, 43 a law-giving family, 49 connection between contentious attitudes and unseen world of, 58 name of the Person we know now with angels, the second mystery, 3 as God the Father, 42-43 nature of, 47-48 EVOLUTION, THEORY OF (see no being less than, could be relied also DARWIN) on never to sin, 94 agnostics explanation of a creation translated from Hebrew word without a Creator. 35 elohim, 94
375
GOD, THE CREATOR a mystery not understood by any religion, 3 author of government 48-50 became the Father thkough the hegettal of the Word in the flesh, 41, 43 created all things by Jesus Christ, 44 existed eternally with the Word, 42 from eternity a Personage in the kingdom of God, 43 has form and shape, 46 his reality provable, 21 imparts life, 40 in absolute authority over all the universe, 49 in history of higher education, a mystery, 1 irrefutable proof found of the existence of, 21 is Spirit, 41 is the great giver, 40 knowledge of became distorted, 34 not a Trinity, 40 not unfair, 130-131 reproducing himself, 94-95, 101, 160, 170 revealed only in the Bible, 38, 39-40 truth about, is mystery number one, 3 unexplained by science, 3 untaught by higher education, 3 was with the Logos in prehistory, 41 why deliberately coded his book, 6 why unreal to most people, 32, 46-47 GOSPEL, THE Daniel knew, 296-298 false ones masquerade under name of traditional Christianity, xii for us today, 298-301 Jesus preached the kingdom of God, 293 necessary to believe, 295-296 spoken by Jesus in parables to cloud the meaning, 295-296 GOVERNMENT OF GOD based on the laws of God 50 both church and state, 336-338 has existed from all eternity, 49 is of necessity from the top down, 49 is perfect when directly administered by Christ, 330-336 never dictated by the governed, 49 on the international level, 341-344
on the national level. 338-341 to supervise education and religion, 344-346 under the supreme command of God, 49 GRACE a doctrine about the forgiveness of sin, 52 turned hy Simon Magus into license to disobey God, 52 HEAVEN (OF GODS THRONE) headquarters of the universe, 84-85 no man has ascended to, except Jesus, 23 HEAVENS, THE created simultaneously with the earth, 45, 71 the whole material universe, 45 HOLY SPIRIT, THE baptism of, 276-278 can enter and combine with the human spirit, 113 no third Person of the trinity, 44-45 opens the human mind to understanding the Word of God, 5 Pentecostals misunderstand, 276-277 poured out, 56-57 the power that responds and does what Jesus commands, 44 truths of the bible revealed only through the, 5 wrongly translated Holy Ghost, 40 HOUSE OF ISRAEL national name for northern ten tribes, 179-180 not the same as the House of Judah-therefore not Jewish, 179-180 HUMAN MIND almost universally assumes what is believed, without auestion or proof, i i by itself cannot understand spiritual truth, 169, 251-252 how functions, 104-105 incomplete without the spirit of God, 111 not by nature equipped to manufacture truih. 11 often embarrassed by the subject of God, 37-38, 98 spiritual truth hidden from it
376
Subject Index
unless revealed by God, 10-11 HUMAN NATURE how it originated, 117 not to disappear at once, 310-313 HUMAN SPIRIT cannot of itself think, 105 cannot see, hear, taste, smell or feel, 105 imparts the power of intellect to the brain, 105 incredible human potential, 355-358 is designed to he entered by and to he combined with the Holy Spirit, 113 is not a soul, 105 makes possible a personal relationship between human man and divine God, 105 makes possible in man a direct contact from the Spirit God, 107 provides the real value of a human life, 108 without the Holy Spirit, lacks spiritual discernment, 169 201-202 fifth basic mystery, 4 fulfilling their role despite themselves, 174-176 her husband came to die for her and proposed a new marriage covenant, 169 married to God the Logos or Word, not to God the Father, 169 punished seven prophetic times, 177-178. 181-182 racial intermarGage forbidden to, 166-168 racially-nationally-religiously to be separate, 173-174 split into two nations, 179-180 stole the tithe from God, 190-191 to become many nations in the latter davs. 164-16!5. 185-189 to demonstkate that the mind of man, with its one spirit, could not have spiritual discernment without Gods Holy Spirit, 169 type of the kingdom of God, 170-172 why called the Lost Ten Tribes, 180-181
HUMANITY (see also MAN) JESUS CHRIST believes Satan, 33 beaten for our healing 211-212 blinded, as tp who, what and why died painful and despkable death, man IS,X I I 212-214 cut off from access to the Spirit of is High Priest, 42 God, except for the few who are long-haired, semi-effeminate especially called, 120-121 picture of Jesus not intellectually does not know way of peace or true satisfying to rational minds, 2 values, 8 qualifies to replace Satan in titanic its number one concern today, 7 battle, 217-221 originally created a little lower spiritual Savior, 214-215 than angels, 62 to be earth ruler and king, 209-211 passively hostile toward God, 37 was God, 211 receptive to the sway of Satan, 117 was Melchisedec in Abrahams day, seems not to want to know the 42 most im ortant knowledge, 33 was the Word in Person, 42, 50 why cut ogfrom God, 128-130 why he came the first time, 216 why put on earth, 94-95 why Pharisees opposed, 223-224 IMMORTAL LIFE a free gift of God, 22, 117 by a resurrection, or by instantaneous change at Christs coming, 262-264 offered to Adam through the symbolic tree of life, 116 ISRAEL, T H E ANCIENT NATION OF birthright promises conditional 176-177, 185-189 demanded a human king, 178-179 festivals given to; ordained forever, JOHN THE BAPTIST (see also ELIJAH TO COME) foretold by the prophet Isaiah, 9-10 prepared the way before the First coming of the Messiah, 9 JOSEPH, T H E PATRIARCH his descendants identified today, 185-189 his descendants to face sudden destruction, 189-190, 195-197 his sons given the name Israel 183-185
377
inherited the birthright, 176 KINGDOM OF GOD ancient Israel a type of, 170-171 announced over 1,900 years in advance, 10 government in the, 171-172 its laws originate and are handed down from God, 49 Jesus gospel message, 4 the seventh basic mystery 4 what is a kingdom, 300-3dl KNOWLEDGE humans must learn true, 5 humans must unlearn false, 5 LAW OF GOD, T H E can be summed up in one all-inclusive word, 49 death penalty of, paid in our stead by Christ, 123 is spiritual, 49 love is the fulfilling of, 49 to be applied in principle, 50 LIFE, PHYSICAL engulfed in mysteries, 1 LOGOS, T H E became flesh 41 became the $on of God, 41 is a Personage, 41 is God as much as the Father is God, 41 is the Word of God, 41 was not the Son of God from eternity, 41
109-110 is mortal, 108-109 lack spiritual life apart from the gift of the Spirit of God, 111-113 leads a temporary physicochemical existence, is kept alive only by the oxidation of his circulating blood. 116 made in the form and shape of God, 46 mystery of, is third in order 3 mystified by his inability tosolve his problems, XII not merely the hiehest animal species,-96 shares the same breath of life with animals, 109 the male, not physically complete without woman, 115-116 unable to find answers to perplexing questions, xii what is he-in the vast expanse of the universe? x why put on earth 94-95 why the creation bf, 87-88
I
MELCHISEDEC abides a priest continually, 42 became Jesus Christ, 42 was like unto the Son of God, 42 was without beginning of days, 42 was without father or mother in Abrahams time, 42 MILLENNIUM (see also WORLD TOMORROW) after the, 351-355 MOSES T H E PROPHET could never, by himself, discover the truths he wrote in the first five books of the Bible, 12 did not seek God before be was drafted into service, 12
name applied to Satan before his rebellion, 73 MYSTERIES, REVELATION OF name is a late Latin form of an how began to be understood by original Hebrew name meaning Herbert W. Armstrong, xi bringer of light, 73 lost eyen to true Church of God, rebelled, 138 x-XI symbolically designated the king of preserved in writings in the Bible, Tyre, 81-85 XI trained a t universe headquarters, MYSTERIES, SEVEN BASIC 84-85 what caused him and his angels to concern lives of every human on sin, 85-87 earth, 5 revealed in the Bible, 5 MAN (see also HUMANITY) were purposely hidden until his creation not yet completed, modern times, 6
378
Subject Index NOAH a just man and perfect in his eenerations. 73 avgrted universal destruction of all flesh, 73 perfect in his heredity and ancestry, 147 walked with God, 73 PASSOVER-EASTER QUESTION breaks out openly in days of Polycarp, bishop of Smyrna, 53 exploded in days of Polycrates of Smyrna and Victor, bishop of Rome, 53 settled for traditional Christianity by the authoritative leadership of Emperor Constantine in A.D. 325 at the Council of Nicea, 54 with traditional teachings of religion, 2 RELIGION what it involves, 9 REPENTANCE (see also ERROR) can only follow admission of being wrong, 5 how Herbert W. Armstrong came to, 26-30 involves admission of both wrong doing and wrong believing, 5 no one can have the Holy Spirit without a complete, 5 RESURRECTION each human being will live again in one or another resurrection, 126-128 of the Great White Throne, 146-147 of the saints. 309-310 to judgment; 127 to life and immortality, 127
PAUL THE APOSTLE Jesus revealed to him many spiritual truths, 12 never would have come to know Gods truths of his own will, 12 was instructed by Christ in person, ROMAN EMPIRE 12 filled with idolatry because it did PETER T H E APOSTLE not know who or what God is, 37 chosen by Christ to be part of final restoration, 301 foundation of the New its leaders suppressed the truth, Testament Church 222-223 32-33 name is a title designating to be restored ten times-seven of leadership, 221-222 which would be ruled over hy a gentile church, 301-303 PREHISTORY God in, 40-41 SABBATH, THE the kingdom of God in, 43 breaking it is rebellion against the Logos in, 41 God, 26 keeping it holy brought an PROTESTANTISM anathema, and punishment from with Roman Catholicism, has traditional Christianity, 284-285 dominated the thinking of the Western world, 2 SALVATION a time order for, 215-216 RATIONAL MIND, THE closed off to humanity after Adam a God composed of invisible spirit and Eve stole the symbolic fruit not intellectually satisfying to, 2 of the tree of knowledge of good existence of God, as presented by and evil, 122-123 religion, is unacceptable to, 3 is now the only day of, 131-132, filled with vanity, 2 134-135 finds long-haired, semi-effeminate not merely accepting Christ, picture of Jesus unsatisfying, 2 238-239 reasoned out self-satisfying, now for only a minute few, 234-237 materialistic explanations of pictured by human reproduction, origins and life, 2 258-261 tries to evade the mystery of the through resurrection, 123-125 universe on the basis of materialism, 2 SATAN THE DEVIL unable, generally, to reconcile new allowed to approach Adam and knowledge about the universe Eve, 38
379
an invisible spirit being who injects the earth, 71 human minds with hostile truly converted Christians shall attitudes, 59 become born as, 51 archkidnapper of all time, 141 broadcasts his attitudes to human SOUL minds, 117 Adam became a living, 22 first recorded lie of, 125-126 can die, 22, 108-109 has been winning a contest each animal is a, 22 between himself and God is mortal, 103-104 according to traditional is physical-formed from matter, Christianity, xiii zz holds the world captive through translation of the Hebrew word sin, 117-119 nephesh, 22,102 lied to our first parents, 38 master broadcaster, 143-145 SUNDAY OBSERVANCE authority for, assumed to he in the originally a super archangel or Bible, ix cherub, 61 removed a t last!, 310 enforced by Council of Laodicea in tries to destroy the Christ-child, fourth century, 284-285 217 Herbert W. Armstrong challenged on question of, ix, 18-19 SECOND COMING, T H E TARTAROS of Christ, 139 condition of restraint for sinning the last generation before, 139-140 angels, 72 to he preceded by the appearance referred to in only one passage in of an Elijah, 9 all the Bible, 72 SIMON MAGUS TIIADITIONAL CHRISTIANITY aspired to turn his pagan religion (see also CLERGY) under the name Christianity, a counterfeit, 249-251. 279-282 into a universal relieion. 52-53 an error of, merely to.accept attempted to supplan; the Christian Passover with Christ, 238-239 assumes a contest between God ceremonies now called Easter. 53 leader of the Babylonian mystery and Satan, xiii blinded to a time order for religion in Samaria, 51 salvation, 215-216 sought to buy the power of apostolic office, 52 deceived by Satan, xiii, 272-273 turned the doctrine of grace into does not understand the mystery license to disobey God, 52 of God, 3 has generally denied Gods SIN commandments, 6 and sexual promiscuity, 192-194 one modern example, 206-207 and the new morality, 192 says, generally, that Gods given public acceptance today, commandments were nailed to 191-192 the cross, 6 homosexual, 193-194 seems not to have comprehended the transgression of the law of the seven great mysteries, 5 God, 72, 73 source of its popular belief and wages of, brings death, 22 practices, 26 teaches that God is desperately SON, THE trying to get the world saved, from eternity one of the XI11 Personages in the kingdom of teaches that whoever will may,,. God, 43 come and he saved now, XUI Jesus Christ, 43 why, cannot understand the Holy the Logos became, 41 Bible, 6
^^
SONS OF GOD angels are, by creation, 60 shouted for joy a t the creation of
380
Subject Index
forbidden to man, 115 reprewnts the getting ways of the present world, 327-328 symbolic of human-created knowledge under Satans sway and rejection of reliance on Gods revealed knowledge, 121 TREE OF LIFE freely accessible to Adam in the Garden of Eden, 116-117 represents way of love and giving, 321 symbolic of immortal life, 116 advancement and appalling evils, v11-VIII UNDERSTANDING doing Gods commandments results in, 6 UNIVERSE, T H E created perhaps millions of years
TRINITY (see also HOLY SPIRIT) a doctrine that destroys the very gospel of Jesus, 51 a word not found in the Bible, 40, WISDOM of, 6 definition 54 by^; Satan has deceived all WORD, T H E traditional Christianity, 51 horn of the virgin Mary, 41 false scripture added to Bible to composed of spirit in prehistory, 43 holster doctrine of, 55 created angels before the creation false teaching that limits God to of matter, 45 three Persons, 44-45 divested himself of his glory as a ha? introduced by Satan into Spirit divinity, 41 Christianity, 51-52 means spokesman or revelatory not supported in any early Greek thought, 41 New Testament manuscript, 55 is a Personage who was made flesh, originated in the latter half of the 41 second century, 54 is the Logos, 41 the doctrine of the great false is translated from the Greek logos, religion called mystery, Babylon 41 the great, 51 was begotten by God the Father, in the womb of Mary, 41 TRUTH, SPIRITUAL was God, 41 could have saved humanity, if was made Gods Son, 41 acted upon, from threat of was not (yet) the Son of God in annihilation, 7 prehistory, 41 explanation of, seldom found in was with God in prehistory, 41 any one biblical passage, xi like a jigsaw puzzle, xi-xii WORLD, T H E not able to be manufactured by cut off from God, 113 the human mind, 11 foundation of, 142-143 not to he generally understood giving it up is like dying, 27 until latter half of twentieth held captive by Satan through the century, xi power of sin, 117-119, 141-142 revealed in the Bible, here a little, how its evils developed, 154-156 there a little, 5 punishment coming on all, 194-195 revealed only through the Holy remains a mystery to most of Spirit, 5 mankind, 1 revealed to apostle Paul, x sentenced by God t o 6,000 years of revealed to David, king of Israel, x punishment, 120-121 whole world deceived about, xii WORLD TOMORROW, T H E a headquarters church in, 346-348 TWENTIETH CENTURY latter half of, is time for spiritual education in 349-351 how it will come, 304-309 truth to he understood, xi paradox of technological what it will he like, 305, 313-326
to be renewed, 358-362 was a perfect creation as far as its creation was a finished, completed work, 71
381
SUGGESTED READING
from the published works of Herbert W. Armstrong T h e Autobiography of Herbert W. ArmstrongT h e Early Years Did God Create a Devil? Does God Exist? Human Nature-Did God Create It? T h e Incredible Human Potential Just W h a t Do Y o u Mean-Born Again? Just W h a t Do Y o u Mean-Conversion? Just W h a t Do You Mean-Kingdom of God? Never Before Understood- W h y Humanity Cannot Solve Its Evils Predestination-Does the Bible Teach It? T h e United States and Britain i n Prophecy W h a t Do Y o u Mean-Salvation? What Is the Reward of the Saved? W h a t Is the True Gospel? W h a t Science Cant Discover About the Human Mind Where Is the True Church? W h y Were You Born? T h e Wonderful World Tomorrow-What I t Will Be Like A World Held Captive World Peace-How I t Will Come Your Awesome Future-How Religion Deceives You These publications are provided free of charge by the Worldwide Church of God in the public interest.
383
1800118508 RRD
HERBERT W. ARMSTRONG, recognized and respected by leaders in government, industry and education around the world, is pastor general of TRUTH the Worldwide Church of God. He began publishing the PLAIN magazine in 1934 and is its editor in chief. In 1947 Mr. Armstrong founded Ambassador College, now with two campuses, in Pasadena, California, and Big Sandy, Texas. He is also founder and chairman of the Ambassador International Cultural Foundation, known for its cultural, charitable and humanitarian activities. Herbert Armstrong has visited more than 70 countries proclaiming the gospel of the kingdom of God, and he has been highly honored by heads of state in such critical areas as Japan, China, Black and South Africa, Israel and Egypt. Now in his nineties, Mr. Armstrong continues to write, broadcast and preach the good news that God will intervene to save mankind in this generation! He is the author of The Missing Dimension in Sex and The Incredible Human Potential, which explains the awesome plan God is working out in human life, The Wonderful World Tomorrow-What It Will Be Like and The United States and Britain in Prophecy.
ISBN 0-376-08773-6